Canavan Trudi-The Ambassador S Mission - Book One of The Traitor Spy Trilogy
Canavan Trudi-The Ambassador S Mission - Book One of The Traitor Spy Trilogy
Canavan Trudi-The Ambassador S Mission - Book One of The Traitor Spy Trilogy
All rights reserved. Except as permitted under the U.S. Copyright Act of 1976, no part of
this publication may be reproduced, distributed, or transmitted in any form or by any
means, or stored in a database or retrieval system, without the prior written permission of
the publisher.
Orbit
Hachette Book Group
237 Park Avenue, New York, NY 10017
www.HachetteBookGroup.com
(http://twitter.com/LittleBrown)
Orbit is an imprint of Hachette Book Group. The Orbit name and logo are trademarks of
Little, Brown Book Group Limited.
The characters and events in this book are ctitious. Any similarity to real persons, living
or dead, is coincidental and not intended by the author.
eISBN: 978-0-316-08925-8
Contents
By Trudi Canavan
Copyright Page
Part One
Part Two
Chapter 16 Hunter
Chapter 17 Hunted
Chapter 18 The Traitor
Chapter 19 In Hiding
Chapter 20 Allies and Enemies
Chapter 21 Welcome Assistance
Chapter 22 A Reunion
Chapter 23 New Helpers
Chapter 24 The Allies you Need
Chapter 25 The Messenger’s News
Chapter 26 A Long Night
Chapter 27 The Trap is Sprung
Chapter 28 Questions
Chapter 29 Answers, and More Questions
Epilogue
Glossary
Acknowledgements
PART ONE
CHAPTER 1
THE OLD AND THE NEW
I t was much earlier than her usual waking time. Dawn was still
some hours away. Sonea blinked in the darkness and wondered
what had woken her. A dream? Or had something real brought
her to this state of sudden alertness in the middle of the night?
Then she heard a sound, faint but undeniable, in the next room.
Heart beating fast, the skin of her scalp tingling, she rose and
silently moved to the bedroom door. She heard a footfall beyond,
then another. Taking hold of the handle, she drew magic, threw up
a shield and took a deep breath.
The handle turned silently. She pulled the door inward slightly
and looked beyond. In the faint moonlight ltering through the
window screens she saw a gure pacing the guestroom. Male, short
of stature, and instantly familiar. Relief ooded through her.
“Cery,” she said, pulling the door open. “Who else would dare
sneak into my rooms in the middle of the night?”
He turned to face her. “Sonea …” He drew in a deep breath, but
said nothing more. A long pause followed and she frowned. It was
not like him to hesitate. Had he come to ask a favour he knew she
would not like?
She concentrated and created a small globe light, enough to ll
the room with a soft glow. Her breath caught in her throat for a
moment. His face was so lined. The years of danger and worry living
as a Thief had aged him faster than anyone else she knew.
I’m wearing plenty of signs of my years, she thought, but the battles
for me were only the petty squabbling of magicians, not surviving in the
uncompromising and often cruel underworld.
“So … what brings you to the Guild in the middle of the night?”
she asked, stepping into the guest room.
He looked at her thoughtfully. “You never ask me how I get here
without being noticed.”
“I don’t want to know. I don’t want to risk anyone else nding out,
in the unlikely event that I must allow someone to read my mind.”
He nodded. “Ah. How are things going here?”
She shrugged. “The same. Rich and poor novices squabbling. And
now that some of the formerly poor novices have graduated and
become magicians, we have squabbling on a new level. One we
have to take seriously. In a few days we’ll be meeting to consider a
petition to abolish the rule against novices and magicians
associating with criminals or people of low repute. If it’s successful
then I will no longer be breaking a rule talking to you.”
“I can walk in the front gate and formally seek an audience?”
“Yes. Now that’s a scenario to give the Higher Magicians a few
sleepless nights. I bet they wish they’d never allowed the lower
classes to enter the Guild.”
“We always knew they would regret it,” Cery said. He sighed and
looked away. “I’ve come to wish the Purge hadn’t ended.”
Sonea frowned and crossed her arms, feeling a stab of anger and
disbelief. “Surely not.”
“Everything has changed for the worse.” He moved to a window
and parted one of the screens, revealing nothing but darkness
beyond.
“And that’s because the Purge was stopped?” She narrowed her
eyes at his back. “Nothing to do with a certain new vice ruining the
lives of so many Imardians, rich and poor?”
“Roet?”
“Yes. The Purge killed hundreds, but roet has taken thousands –
and enslaved more.” Every day she saw the victims in her hospices.
Not just those caught up in the drug’s seductions, but their
desperate parents, spouses, siblings, o spring and friends.
And for all I know, Cery’s one of the Thieves importing and selling it,
she couldn’t help thinking, and not for the rst time.
“They say it stops you caring,” Cery said quietly, turning to face
her. “No more worries or concerns. No fear. No … grief.”
His voice caught on the last word and suddenly Sonea felt all her
senses grow sharper.
“What is it, Cery? Why did you come here?”
He drew in a deep breath. Let it out slowly. “My family,” he said,
“were murdered tonight.”
Sonea rocked back on her heels. The edge of a terrible pain
stabbed her, reminding her that some losses can never be forgotten
– and should never be. But she held it back. She would be of no help
to Cery if she let it consume her. He looked lost. In his eyes was an
unshielded shock and agony. She strode to him and drew him into
her arms. He sti ened for a moment, then slumped against her.
“It’s part of being a Thief,” he said. “You do all you can to protect
your people, but there is always danger. Vesta left me because she
couldn’t live with it. Couldn’t stand being locked away. Selia was
stronger. Braver. After all she’d put up with, she didn’t deserve to …
and the boys …”
Vesta had been Cery’s rst wife. She’d been smart, but prickly and
prone to temper tantrums. Selia had been a much better match for
him, calm and with the quiet wisdom of someone who watched the
world with open, yet forgiving eyes. Sonea held him as he shook
with sobs, feeling tears in her own eyes. Can I imagine what it must
be like to lose a child? I know the fear of losing them, but not the pain of
actual loss. I think it would be worse than I can ever imagine. To know
one’s children will never grow up … except … what of his other child?
Though she must be all grown up by now.
“Is Anyi okay?” she asked.
Cery stilled, then drew away. His expression was taut with
indecision. “I don’t know. I’ve let people think that I didn’t care
about Vesta and Anyi after they left, for their own protection –
though I’ve occasionally arranged for Anyi and I to cross each
other’s paths so she would at least continue to recognise me.” He
shook his head. “Whoever did this, got past the best locks money
can buy, and people I trusted completely. They did their research.
They might know about her. Or they know, but they don’t know her
location. If I check on her I might lead them to her.”
“Can you get a warning to her?”
He frowned. “Yes. Perhaps …” He sighed. “I have to try.”
“What will you tell her to do?”
“Hide.”
“Then it won’t matter if you lead them to her or not, will it? She’ll
have to go into hiding either way.”
He looked thoughtful. “I suppose so.”
Sonea smiled as a look of determination hardened his face. His
entire body was now tense. He looked at her and his expression
became apologetic.
“Go on,” she said. “And next time don’t wait so long to visit me.”
He managed a faint smile. “I won’t. Oh. Also, there’s something
else. It’s just a niggle, but I reckon one of the new Thieves, Skellin,
fancies having his own magician. He’s a rot supplier, so you better
hope none of your magicians has a weakness for the stu .”
“They’re not my magicians, Cery,” she reminded him, not for the
rst time.
Instead of his usual grin, he responded with a grimace. “Yes.
Anyway. Unless you want to know how I get in and out of here, you
better leave the room.”
Sonea rolled her eyes, then walked to the bedroom door. She
turned back before closing it. “Good night, Cery. I’m so sorry about
your family and I hope Anyi is alive and not in any danger.”
He nodded, then swallowed. “I do, too.”
Then she closed the door behind her and waited. There were a few
faint thuds from the guest room, then silence. She counted to a
hundred then opened the door again. The room was unoccupied.
She could see no sign of his entrance and exit.
The darkness between the window screens was not so
impenetrable now. It had gained a greyish tone, a hint of shape and
form just discernible in the early morning light. She took a step
toward it and stopped. Was that the square bulk of the High Lord’s
Residence, or was she imagining it? Either way, the suggestion sent
a shiver down her spine.
Stop it. He’s not there.
Balkan had lived there for the last twenty years. She had often
wondered whether he felt haunted by the shadow of the former
occupant, but had never asked, sure such a question would be
tactless.
He’s up on the hill. Behind you.
She turned and looked beyond the walls, seeing in her imagination
the shiny white new stone slabs among the grey of the ancient
cemetery. An old longing lled her, but she hesitated. She had much
to do today. But it was early – dawn was only just breaking. She had
time. And it had been a while. Cery’s terrible news brought a need
to … to what? Perhaps to acknowledge his loss by recalling her
own. She needed to do more than act out the usual daily routine
and pretend something awful hadn’t happened.
Returning to her bedroom, she washed and changed quickly,
threw a cloak around her shoulders – black over black – then
slipped out of the main door to her room, walked as quietly as she
could down the hall of the Magicians’ Quarters to the entrance and
out onto the path to the cemetery.
New paths had been laid since the rst time she’d visited, with
Lord Rothen, over twenty years before. Weedy vegetation had been
removed, but the Guild had left a wall of protective trees around the
outermost graves. She noted the smooth slabs of freshly carved
stone. Some she had seen laid, some she hadn’t. When a magician
died, any magic left in his or her body was released, and if there
was enough of it their body was consumed. So the old graves had
been a mystery. If there was no body to bury, why were there
graves here?
The rediscovery of black magic had answered that question. The
last remaining magical energy of those ancient magicians had been
drawn away by a black magician, leaving a body to bury.
Now that black magic was no longer taboo, though strictly
controlled, burials had become popular again. The task of drawing
the last of a magician’s power fell to the Guild’s two black
magicians, her and Black Magician Kallen.
Sonea felt that, if she had taken the last of a magician’s power at
death, she ought to be present at the funeral. I wonder if Kallen feels
the same sense of obligation when a magician chooses him. She moved
to a plain, undecorated slab of stone and dried the dew from one
corner with magical heat so she could sit down. Her eyes found the
name carved into it. Akkarin. You would have found it amusing to see
how many of the magicians who were so against reviving the use of black
magic resort to it in the end, so their esh remains after death to rot in
the ground. Perhaps you’d have decided, as I have, that allowing your
body to be consumed by your last magic is more appropriate for a
magician and, she glanced at the increasingly elaborate decoration
on the newer graves provided by the Guild, considerably less
expensive.
She looked at the words on the grave she sat upon. A name, a title,
a house name, a family name. Later the words “Father of Lorkin”
had been added, in small, begrudging letters. But of her own name
there was no mention. And will never be, while your family has
anything to do with it, Akkarin. But at least they’ve accepted your son.
Pushing bitterness aside, she turned her mind to Cery and his
family for a while, allowing herself to remember grief and feel the
ache of sympathy. To allow memories to return, some welcome,
some not. After a while the sound of footsteps roused her from her
thoughts and she realised the sun had risen completely.
Turning to face the visitor, she smiled as she saw Rothen walking
toward her. For a moment his wrinkled face was a mask of concern,
then it relaxed into an expression of relief.
“Sonea,” he said, pausing to catch his breath. “A messenger came
to see you. Nobody knew where you’d gone.”
“And I bet it caused a lot of unnecessary fuss and excitement.”
He frowned at her. “This is not a good time to be making the Guild
question their trust of a common-born magician, Sonea, considering
the change of rules about to be proposed.”
“Is there ever a good time for that?” She rose and sighed. “Besides,
I didn’t destroy the Guild and turn all Kyralians into slaves, did I? I
went for a walk. Nothing sinister at all.” She looked at him. “I
haven’t left the city in twenty years, and have only left the Guild
grounds to work in the hospices. Isn’t that enough?”
“Not for some. And certainly not for Kallen.”
Sonea shrugged. “I expect that from Kallen. It’s his job.” She
hooked her hand around his elbow and they started back down the
path. “Don’t worry about Kallen, Rothen. I can handle him. Besides,
he wouldn’t dare complain about me visiting Akkarin’s grave.”
“You should have left a message for Jonna, saying where you were
going.”
“I know, but these things tend to be a little spontaneous.”
He glanced at her. “Are you all right?”
She smiled at him. “Yes. I have a son who is alive and thriving,
hospices in the city where I can do some good, and you. What more
do I need?”
He paused to think. “A husband?”
She laughed. “I don’t need a husband. I’m not sure I even want
one. I thought I’d be lonely once Lorkin moved out of my rooms, but
I’m nding I like having more time to myself. A husband would …
get in the way.”
Rothen chuckled.
Or be a weakness an enemy could exploit, she found herself thinking.
But that thought had more to do with Cery’s news sitting fresh in
her mind than any real threat. While she was hardly without
enemies, they merely disliked her for her lowly origins or feared the
black magic she wielded. Nothing that would motivate any to the
point of harming someone she loved. Otherwise they would have
targeted Lorkin already.
As she thought of her son, memories rose of him as a child.
Memories mixed together, older and younger, happy and
disappointed, and she felt a familiar tight feeling that was part joy
and part pain. When he was quiet and brooding, thinking hard or
being clever, he reminded her so much of his father. But the
con dent, charming, stubborn, vocal side of him was so unlike
Akkarin that she could only see a person who was unique and
utterly himself and like no other. Except that Rothen claimed the
stubborn and vocal part of his nature had de nitely come from her.
As they emerged from the forest, Sonea looked down at the Guild
grounds. Before them stood the Magicians’ Quarters, a long
rectangular building that housed those magicians who chose to live
in the grounds. At the far end was a courtyard, beyond which
another building mirrored the placement and shape of the rst – the
Novices’ Quarters.
At the far end of the courtyard was the grandest of the Guild
buildings, the University. Three storeys tall, it rose above all other
Guild structures. Even after twenty years, Sonea felt a small glow of
pride that she and Akkarin had saved this building. And, as always,
it was followed by sadness and regret at the cost. If they had let the
building fall, killing those that remained inside, and instead taken
the power of the Arena, Akkarin might have lived.
But it wouldn’t have mattered how much power we’d gathered. Once he
had been injured he would have still chosen to give me all his power and
die rather than heal himself – or let me heal him – and risk us losing to
the Ichani. And no matter how much power we’d taken, I’d never have
had the time to defeat Kariko and heal Akkarin as well. She frowned.
Maybe it isn’t me Lorkin gets his stubborn side from after all.
“Are you tempted to speak out in favour of the petition?” Rothen
asked as they started down the path. “I know you’re in favour of
abolishing the rule.”
She shook her head.
Rothen smiled. “Why not?”
“I might do more harm to their cause than good. After all,
someone who grew up in the slums then went on to break a vow,
learn forbidden magic, and defy the Higher Magicians and king to
such a degree they were forced to send her into exile, is hardly
going to inspire trust in lower-class-origin magicians.”
“You saved the country.”
“I helped Akkarin save the country. There’s a big di erence.”
Rothen grimaced. “You played as great a part – and struck the
nal blow. They should remember that.”
“And Akkarin sacri ced himself. Even if I wasn’t slum-born and a
woman, I’d have a hard time measuring up to that.” She shrugged.
“I’m not interested in thanks and recognition, Rothen. All that
matters to me is Lorkin and the hospices. And yourself, of course.”
He nodded. “But what if I told you that Lord Regin has o ered to
represent those opposed to the petition?”
She felt her stomach sink at the name. Though the novice who had
tormented her during her early years in the University was now a
grown man, married and with two adult daughters, and had only
ever treated her politely and respectfully since the Ichani Invasion,
she could not help feeling an echo of distrust and dislike.
“It doesn’t surprise me,” she said. “He’s always been a snob.”
“Yes, though his character has improved a great deal since your
novice days.”
“So he’s a well-mannered snob.”
Rothen chuckled. “Tempted now?”
She shook her head again.
“Well, you had better expect to have your opinion sought on the
issue,” he warned. “Many will want to know your views and seek
your advice.”
As they reached the courtyard, Sonea sighed. “I doubt it. But in
case you’re right I will consider how I’ll reply to any questions that
come my way. I don’t want to be an obstruction to the petitioners,
either.”
And if Regin is representing the opposition, I had better be alert to any
clever tactics. His manners may have improved, but he’s still as
intelligent and devious as ever.
There was a small, neat tailor’s shop in West Gliar Street in the
North Quarter that, if you knew the right people, gave access to
small, private rooms on the second oor o ering entertainment to
young, rich men of the city.
Lorkin had been brought here for the rst time four years ago, by
his friend and fellow novice, Dekker, along with the rest of their
friends. As always, it had been Dekker’s idea. He was the boldest of
Lorkin’s friends, though that was a typical trait of most young
Warriors. Of the rest of the group, Alchemist Sherran had always
done whatever Dekker suggested, but Healers Reater and Orlon
were not so easily led into mischief. Perhaps it was only natural for
Healers to be cautious. Whatever the reason, Lorkin had only agreed
to accompany Dekker because the pair hadn’t refused to.
Four years later they were all graduated magicians, and the tailor’s
shop was their favourite meeting place. Today Perler had brought
his Elyne cousin, Jalie, to visit their haunt for the rst time.
“So this is the tailor shop I’ve heard so much about,” a young
woman said, looking around the room. The furniture was nely
made, worn cast-o s from the wealthier houses in the city. The
paintings and window screens were crude in both execution and
subject.
“Yes,” Dekker replied. “All the delights you might desire.”
“At a price,” she said, looking at him sideways.
“At a price we may be willing to pay on your behalf, for the
pleasure of your company.”
She smiled. “You’re so sweet!”
“But not without her older cousin’s approval,” Perler added, giving
Dekker a level look.
“Of course,” the younger man said, bowing slightly in Perler’s
direction.
“So what delights do they o er?” Jalie asked of Dekker.
He waved a hand. “Pleasures of the body, pleasures of the mind.”
“Of the mind?”
“Ooh! Let’s get a brazier in here,” Sherran said, his eyes gleaming.
“Have a little roet to relax us.”
“No,” Lorkin said. Hearing another voice speak along with his, he
turned to nod in gratitude to Orlon, who was as repelled by the drug
as Lorkin was.
They had tried it once before, and Lorkin had found the
experience disturbing. It wasn’t how it had brought out Dekker’s
cruel side, so that he had teased and tormented the girl who had
been besotted with him at the time, but how this behaviour
suddenly hadn’t bothered Lorkin. In fact, he’d found it funny, but
later could not understand why.
The girl’s infatuation had ended that day, and Sherran’s love a air
with roet had begun. Before then, Sherran would have done
anything Dekker had asked him. Since that day, he would only do so
if it didn’t come between him and roet.
“Let’s have a drink instead,” Perler suggested. “Some wine.”
“Do magicians drink?” Jalie asked. “I thought they weren’t
allowed to.”
“We are,” Reater told her, “but it’s not a good idea to get too
drunk. Losing control is as likely to involve magic as much as your
stomach or bladder.”
“I see,” she said. “So does the Guild have to make sure any of the
lowies it takes in aren’t drunks?”
The others glanced at Lorkin, and he smiled, knowing that it
wasn’t because his mother was a “lowie” but because they knew he
would walk out if they made more than the occasional joke about
the lower classes.
“There are probably more snooties that are drunks than lowies,”
Dekker told her. “We have ways of dealing with them. What wine
would you like to drink?”
Lorkin looked away as the conversation turned to wine varieties.
“Lowies” and “snooties” were the names that the rich and poor
novices had given each other after the Guild had decided to accept
entrants to the university from outside of the Houses. The nickname
“lowie” had been adopted because none of the novices that had
come from lower classes were actually poor. All novices were paid a
generous allowance by the Guild. As were magicians, though they
could supplement their income by magical or other means. A term
had to be invented, and it happened to be an un attering one, so
the lowies had retorted with their own nickname for novices from
the Houses. One that Lorkin had to admit was appropriate.
Lorkin did not t into either group. His mother had come from the
slums, his father from one of the most powerful Houses in Imardin.
He had grown up in the Guild, away from the political
manipulations and obligations of the Houses or the hard life of the
slums. Most of his friends were snooties. He hadn’t avoided
befriending lowies deliberately, but most lowies, while not
appearing to resent him like they did the snooties, had been hard to
talk to. It was only after some years, when Lorkin had a rm circle
of snooty friends, that he realised that the lowies had been
intimidated by him – or rather, who his father had been.
“… Sachaka like? Do they really still keep slaves?”
Lorkin’s attention snapped back to the conversation, and he
shivered. The name of the land from which his father’s murderer
had come from always sent a chill down his spine. Yet while it had
once been from fear, now it was also from a strange excitement.
Since the Ichani Invasion the Allied Lands had turned their attention
to the neighbour they’d once ignored. Magicians and diplomats had
ventured into Sachaka, seeking to avoid future con ict through
negotiation, trade and agreements. Whenever they returned they
brought descriptions of a strange culture and stranger landscape.
“They do,” Perler replied. Lorkin sat up a little straighter. Reater’s
older brother had returned from Sachaka a few weeks ago, having
spent a year working as the assistant to the Guild Ambassador to
Sachaka. “Though you don’t see most of them. Your robes disappear
from your room and reappear cleaned, but you never see who takes
them. But you see the slave assigned to serve you, of course. We all
have one.”
“So you had a slave?” Sherran asked. “Isn’t that against the king’s
law?”
“They don’t belong to us,” Perler replied, shrugging. “The
Sachakans don’t know how to treat servants properly, so we have to
let them assign us slaves. Either that or we’d have to wash our own
clothes and cook our own meals.”
“Which would be terrible,” Lorkin said in mock horror. His
mother’s aunt was her servant, and her family worked as servants
for rich families, yet they had a dignity and resourcefulness that he
respected. He was determined that, should he ever have to do
domestic chores, he would never be as humiliated by it as his fellow
magicians would be.
Perler looked at him and shook his head. “There’d be no time to
do it ourselves. There’s always so much work to do. Ah, here are the
drinks.”
“What sort of work?” Orlon asked as glasses of wine or water were
poured and handed around.
“Negotiating trade deals, trying to encourage the Sachakans to
abolish slavery in order to join the Allied Lands, keeping up with
Sachakan politics – there is a group of rebels Ambassador Maron
heard of that he was trying to nd out more about, until he had to
return to sort out his family’s troubles.”
“Sounds boring,” Dekker said.
“Actually, it was rather exciting.” Perler grinned. “A little scary at
times, but I felt like we were doing something, well, historic. Making
a di erence. Changing things for the better – even if in tiny steps.”
Lorkin felt a strange thrill go through him. “Do you think they’re
coming around on slavery?” he asked.
Perler shrugged. “Some are, but it’s hard to tell if they’re
pretending to agree in order to be polite, or gain something from us.
Maron thinks they could be persuaded to give up slavery much more
easily than black magic.”
“It’s going to be hard to persuade them to give up black magic
when we have two black magicians,” Reater pointed out. “Seems a
bit hypocritical.”
“Once they ban black magic we will, too,” Perler said con dently.
Dekker turned to grin at Lorkin. “If that happens Lorkin won’t be
taking over from his mother.”
Lorkin gave a snort of derision. “As if she’d let me. She’d much
rather I took over running the hospices.”
“Would that be so bad?” Orlon asked quietly. “Just because you
chose Alchemy doesn’t mean you couldn’t help out the Healers.”
“You need to be driven by absolute, unwavering dedication to run
something like a hospice,” Lorkin replied. “I’m not. Though I almost
wish I was.”
“Why?” Jalie asked.
Lorkin spread his hands. “I’d like to do something useful with my
life.”
“Pah!” Dekker said. “If you can a ord to spend your life indulging
yourself, why wouldn’t you?”
“Boredom?” Orlon suggested.
“Who is bored?” a new, feminine voice said.
A completely di erent sort of thrill ran down Lorkin’s spine. He
felt his breath catch in his throat, and his stomach clenched
unpleasantly. All turned to see a dark-haired young woman slip
through the door. She smiled as she looked around the room. As her
eyes met Lorkin’s, her smile faltered, but only for a moment.
“Beriya.” He spoke her name almost without wanting to, and he
instantly hated how it came out in a weak, pathetic gasp.
“Come join us,” Dekker invited.
No, Lorkin wanted to say. But he was supposed to be over Beriya.
It had been two years since her family had taken her away to Elyne.
As she sat down, he looked away as if uninterested in her, and tried
to relax the muscles that had sti ened the moment he’d heard her
voice. Which was most of them.
She was the rst woman he’d fallen in love with – and so far the
only one. They’d met at every opportunity, openly and in secret.
Every waking moment she had been in his thoughts, and she’d
claimed it was the same for her. He would have done anything for
her.
Some people had encouraged them, some people had made half-
hearted attempts to help him keep his feet on the ground – at least
when it came to his magical studies. The trouble was, there was no
reason for either his mother or Beriya’s family to disapprove of the
pairing. And it turned out that he was the sort who became so
entranced when in love that no amount of sympathy or stern
lectures, not even from Lord Rothen, who he respected and loved
like a favourite grandfather, could keep him anchored in reality.
Everyone had decided to wait until he recovered his mind enough to
concentrate on something other than Beriya, then help him catch up
with his training.
Then her cousin had discovered them in bed together and her
family had insisted that the two of them marry as soon as possible.
It did not matter that he, as a magician, could prevent Beriya
becoming pregnant. If they did not marry, she would be regarded as
“spoiled” to any future suitor.
Lorkin, and his mother, had agreed. It was Beriya who had
refused.
She also refused to see him. When he nally managed to ambush
her one day, she had told him she had never loved him. That she
had encouraged him because she had heard that magicians could
make love without the danger of siring a child. That she was sorry
for lying to him.
His mother had told him that the awful way he felt was the closest
that most magicians came to knowing what it felt like for a non-
magician to be sick. The best cure was time and the kindness of
family and friends. And then she’d used some words to describe
Beriya’s behaviour that he could not have repeated in the company
of most people he knew.
Fortunately, Beriya’s family had taken her away to Elyne, so by
the time the hurt subsided enough for him to feel anger she was
well out of sight. He’d vowed not to fall in love again, but when a
girl in his Alchemy class had shown an interest, his resolve had
weakened. He liked her practical nature. She was everything Beriya
hadn’t been. A strange hypocrisy existed in Kyralian culture: nobody
expected women magicians to remain celibate. But by the time he’d
realised that he didn’t love her, she was well and truly infatuated
with him. He’d done all he could to end that entanglement as gently
as possible, but he knew she now resented him deeply.
Love, he’d decided, was one messy business.
Beriya moved to a chair and sank into it gracefully. “So who is
bored?” she asked.
As the others denied it, Lorkin considered her and the lessons he’d
learned. In the last year he’d met a few women who were both good
company and good lovers, and wanted no more than that. He’d
found he preferred this sort of encounter. The seductions that
Dekker undertook, which only ended in hurt and scandal – or worse
– did not appeal. And the a ectionless marriage that Reater had
been forced into by his parents sounded like his worst nightmare.
Father’s family hasn’t attempted to nd me a bride in a while now.
Maybe they’re starting to realise how much pleasure Mother gets from
spoiling all their plans for me. Though I’m sure she wouldn’t block
anything if I wanted it.
He dragged his thoughts back to the present as the conversation
turned to the exploits of mutual friends of Beriya and Dekker.
Lorkin listened and let the afternoon slip by. Eventually the two
Healers left to visit the new racecourse, and Beriya left for a dress
tting. Dekker, Sherran and Jalie set o on foot to their family
homes, which were in the same main street of the Inner Circle,
leaving Lorkin to return to the Guild alone.
Walking through the streets of the Inner Circle, Lorkin looked at
the grand buildings thoughtfully. This place had been his home all
his life. He had never lived outside of it. Never been to a foreign
country. Never even left the city. Ahead he could see the Guild
Gates.
Are they the bars of a prison to me, or a wall to keep out danger?
Beyond was the front of the University, where his parents had once
fought Sachakan black magicians in a last desperate battle. Those
magicians were only Ichani, the Sachakan version of outcast criminals.
How would that battle have ended if they’d been Ashaki, black-magic-
wielding noble warriors? We were lucky to have won that battle.
Everyone knows that. Black Magician Kallen and my mother may not be
able to save us if the Sachakans ever decide to invade us properly.
A familiar gure was approaching the gates from within. As the
man passed through them, Lorkin smiled. He knew Lord Dannyl
through his mother and Lord Rothen. It had been a while since he’d
seen the historian. As always, Dannyl wore a slightly distracted
frown, and Lorkin knew the older magician could easily walk past
without seeing him.
—Lord Dannyl, Lorkin called, keeping his mental voice quiet.
Mental communication was frowned upon, since it could be heard
by all magicians – whether friends or enemies. But calling another
magician’s name was considered safe, as doing so gave away little
information to anyone listening.
The tall magician looked up, saw Lorkin, and his frown
disappeared. They walked toward each other, meeting at the
entrance of the street Dannyl lived on.
“Lord Lorkin. How are things?”
Lorkin shrugged. “Well enough. How’s your research going?”
Dannyl frowned down at the bundle he was carrying. “The Great
Library sent some records that I hoped would provide more details
of the state of Imardin after Tagin’s death.”
Lorkin could not remember who Tagin was, but he nodded
anyway. Dannyl had been caught up in his history of magic for so
long he often forgot that other people did not know the details as
well as he. It must be a relief to know what you want to dedicate your
life to, Lorkin thought. None of this wondering what to do with yourself.
“How … how did you come up with the idea to write a history of
magic?” Lorkin asked.
Dannyl looked at Lorkin and shrugged. “The task found me,” he
said. “I sometimes wish it hadn’t, but then I nd some new piece of
information and,” he smiled wryly, “I remember how important it is
that the past isn’t lost. History has lessons to teach us, and perhaps
one day I’ll stumble on some secret that will bene t us.”
“Like black magic?” Lorkin suggested.
Dannyl grimaced. “Maybe something that doesn’t involve as much
risk and sacri ce.”
Lorkin felt his heart skip. “Another sort of defensive magic? That
would be a great thing to nd.” It would not only free the Guild from
having to use black magic, but could either provide a defence against the
Sachakans, or persuade the Sachakans to give up black magic and
slavery and join the Allied Lands. If I found such a thing … but this is
Dannyl’s idea, not mine …
Dannyl shrugged. “I might nd nothing at all. But to nd the
truth, record and preserve it, is achievement enough, for me.”
Well … if Dannyl doesn’t care … would he mind if someone else
searched for an alternative to black magic? Would he mind if I did? A
tingle of hope ran down Lorkin’s spine.
Lorkin took a deep breath. “Could … could I look at the work
you’ve done so far?”
The older magician’s eyebrows rose. “Of course. I’ll be interested
to hear what you think of it. You might notice something I haven’t.”
He looked down the street, then shrugged. “Why don’t you join
Tayend and me for dinner? Afterwards I’ll show you my notes and
sources, and explain the gaps in history I’m trying to plug.”
Lorkin found himself nodding. “Thank you.” If he went back to his
room in the Guild, he’d only end up alternating between brooding
over Beriya and telling himself his life was better without her. “I’m
sure it’ll be fascinating.”
Dannyl gestured toward his house, a grand two-storey building he
had rented since retiring from the position of Guild Ambassador to
Elyne. Though it was known that Dannyl and Tayend were more
than mere friends, little was said about it these days. Dannyl had
chosen to live in the city rather than the Guild grounds because, as
he said, “it’s an agreement of sorts: the Guild pretends blindness, so
we give them nothing to see.”
“Do you need to return to the Guild rst?”
Lorkin shook his head. “No, but if you need to give Tayend and
the servants some warning—”
“No, they won’t mind. Tayend brings unexpected visitors to the
house all the time. Our servants are used to it.”
He beckoned and started toward his home, and Lorkin fell into
step beside him.
CHAPTER 3
SAFE PLACES, DANGEROUS DESTINATIONS
T he trees and shrubs of the Guild gardens cooled and slowed the
late summer wind to a pleasant breeze. Within one of the
garden “rooms,” well shaded by a large ornamental pachi tree,
Lorkin and Dekker sat on one of the seats arranged here and there
for magicians to rest on. As the last shreds of his hangover began to
ease, Lorkin leaned back against the back of the seat and closed his
eyes. The sound of birds mingled with that of distant voices and
footsteps – and the shrill sound of taunts and protests somewhere
behind him.
Dekker turned to look at the same time as Lorkin. Behind them
was a screen of shrubs and trees, so they both stood up to peer over
the top of the foliage. Over the other side, four boys had surrounded
another and were pushing their victim about.
“Stu-pid lo-wie,” they sang. “Got no fam-ly. Al-ways gri-my. Al-
ways smel-ly.”
“Hai!” Dekker shouted. “Stop that! Or I’ll get you volunteered to
help in the hospices.”
Lorkin grimaced. His mother had never been happy with Lady
Vinara’s idea of punishing novices by making them help in the
hospices. She said they’d never consider the work worthwhile or
noble if they were expected to want to avoid it. But she never had
enough volunteers, so she couldn’t bring herself to protest. Some of
those sent to her for punishing had actually chosen the healing
discipline because working with her had inspired them, but they
were mocked quietly by their fellow novices.
The novices muttered apologies and ed in di erent directions. As
Lorkin and Dekker sat down again, two magicians appeared in the
entrance to the garden room.
“Ah! I thought I heard your voice, Dekker,” Reater said. Perler’s
worried frown faded as he recognised his brother’s friends. “Mind if
we join you?”
“Not at all,” Dekker said, gesturing to the opposite bench seat.
Lorkin looked from one brother to another, wondering at the
reason for the frown Perler had been wearing. Reater seemed far too
glad to have stumbled upon them.
“Perler got some bad news this morning,” Reater said. He turned
to his brother. “Tell them.”
Perler glanced at Reater. “Not bad for you, I hope.” His brother
shrugged and did not answer, so he sighed and looked at Dekker.
“Lord Maron has quit. It’s going to take longer than he thought to
x his family’s troubles. So I’m not going back to Sachaka.”
“You don’t get to assist the new Ambassador?” Lorkin asked.
Perler shrugged. “I could if I wanted to. But …” He looked at his
brother. “I have a few family matters to take care of, too.”
Reater winced.
“So who is going to replace him?” Dekker wondered.
“Someone said Lord Dannyl has applied.” Reater grinned. “Perhaps
he wants to check out the local—”
“Reater,” Perler said sternly.
“What? Everyone knows he’s a lad.”
“Which doesn’t make it funny when you make crude jokes about
it. Grow up and get over it.” He rolled his eyes. “Besides, Lord
Dannyl won’t want to go. He’s too busy researching that book of
his.”
Lorkin felt his heart skip. “He told me last night that his research
was going slowly. Maybe … maybe he’s hoping to do some research
there.”
Reater looked sidelong at his brother. “That change your mind?
Ow!” He rubbed his arm where Perler had just punched it. “That
hurt.”
“Which was the point.” Perler looked thoughtful. “It’ll be
interesting to see if anyone volunteers to be his assistant. Most
people might be willing to ignore Lord Dannyl’s ways, but risking
speculation by o ering to assist him is probably beyond most.”
Lorkin shrugged. “I’d go.”
The others turned to stare at him. Lorkin looked around at their
shocked faces, and laughed.
“No, I’m not a lad. But Lord Dannyl has always been easy to get
along with and his research is interesting – and worthwhile. I’d be
proud to take part in it.” To his surprise, they continued to look
worried. Except Perler, he noted.
“But … Sachaka,” Reater said.
“Would that be wise?” Dekker asked.
Lorkin looked from one to the other. “Perler survived. Why not
me?”
“Because your parents killed some Sachakans a few years back,”
Dekker pointed out in a tone suggesting Lorkin was stupid. “They
tend to take exception to that.”
Lorkin spread his hands to encompass the Guild. “So did all
magicians during the battle, as did the novices. What di erence is
there in that to what my parents did?”
Dekker opened his mouth, but nothing came out and he closed it
again. He looked at Perler, who chuckled.
“Don’t look to me for support on this one,” the older magician
said. “Lorkin’s parentage might make him a little more interesting to
the Sachakans than other magicians, but so long as he doesn’t point
it out all the time, I doubt he’d be in any more danger than I was.”
He looked at Lorkin. “Still, I’d let the Higher Magicians decide that.
There may be a reason why you shouldn’t go that they’ve kept to
themselves.”
Lorkin turned to regard Dekker triumphantly. His friend looked at
him, frowned, then shook his head.
“Don’t go volunteering just to prove me wrong.”
Lorkin laughed. “Would I do that?”
“Probably.” Dekker smiled wryly. “Or just to annoy me. Knowing
what your family is like, you’ll turn out to be instrumental in
convincing the Sachakans to give up slavery and join with the Allied
Lands, and within a few years I’ll nd myself actually teaching
Warrior Skills to Sachakan novices.”
Smothering the urge to grimace, Lorkin forced a smile. There it is
again. This expectation that I’ll do something important. But that’s never
going to happen while I sit around in the Guild, doing nothing.
“That’ll do for a start,” he said. “Anything else?”
Dekker made a rude noise and looked away. “Invent a wine that
doesn’t cause hangovers and I’ll forgive you anything.”
R eaching out to touch the wall, Cery felt a wry a ection. Once,
the old outer city defences had been a symbol of the division
between rich and poor – a barrier beyond which, after the
Purge had driven all the homeless and the occupants of
overcrowded safehouses out of the city and into the slums each
winter, only Thieves and their friends could pass.
Now it was meaningless to Imardians except as a lingering
reminder of the past. It formed part of the structure of one of Cery’s
properties, this time a sprawling storehouse for importers to keep
their wares, both legal and smuggled. There were still a few
entrances to the underground network of passages known as the
Thieves’ Road, but they were rarely used. He’d kept them only as
possible escape routes, but these days a Thief using the Road was as
likely to meet trouble as escape it.
Cery moved away from the wall and sat down. He had decided
that the well-appointed apartment on the second oor of the
storehouse was as good a place to settle as any. Returning to his old
hideout was unthinkable. Even if it hadn’t contained painful
memories, it clearly hadn’t been secure enough. Not that any of his
other hideouts were better protected, but there was a chance, at
least, that their location wasn’t known by his family’s killer.
But he had no intention of hiding away. As always, every time he
ventured out into the city, whether in his own district or not,
someone could attack him. Which made him wonder if he was
wrong to assume he had been the killer’s true target.
No. Even though they waited until I was gone to kill my family, the
true target was me. Selia and the boys had no enemies.
His chest constricted at the thought of them, and for a moment he
couldn’t breathe. Somehow he took that su ocating grief and
channelled it into something else: a deep, growing fury. If the killer
or killers, or their employer, had intended to hurt Cery they had
succeeded. And they were going to pay for it. Which meant it was
more important to nd out who had killed his family, and why, than
how they’d managed to discover and break into his rooms.
He took a few long, deep breaths. Gol had suggested the Thief
Hunter might have killed them, but Cery dismissed the idea. The
legendary vigilante did not target the families of Thieves, or kill
them to hurt Thieves. He only killed Thieves.
A faint chiming reached his ears in a pattern he recognised, so he
rose and moved to a tube protruding from the wall, and placed his
ear to it. The voice that echoed within was distorted, but
recognisable. Cery moved around the room pulling levers and
turning knobs until a section of wall swivelled open. Gol stepped
inside.
“How did it go?” Cery asked, moving back to his chair. Gol took
the seat opposite and rubbed his hands together.
“There are rumours about already. Don’t know if one of our lot let
it slip or the knife’s been boasting.” Cery nodded. Some assassins
liked to own up to their high-pro le targets, as it demonstrated how
clever they were. “I doubt Anyi would say anything,” Gol added.
“She might, if she had to. Did you do the usual rounds?”
Gol nodded.
“So how is business?”
Leaning back in the chair, Cery listened as his bodyguard and
friend related where he’d been and who he’d spoken to since
venturing out early that morning. It took an e ort to keep his mind
on the man’s words, but Cery forced himself to concentrate. To his
relief, business in his district appeared to be continuing as it always
did. Gol hadn’t found any evidence that someone was taking
advantage of Cery’s distraction yet.
“So,” Gol said. “What are you going to do now?”
Cery shrugged. “Nothing. Obviously somebody wants me to react
in some way. I’m not going to oblige them. I’ll continue business as
usual.”
Gol frowned, opened his mouth, then closed it without saying
anything. Cery managed a humourless smile.
“Oh, don’t think that I’m not red about my family’s murder, Gol.
I’ll have my revenge. But whoever broke into the hideout was clever
and careful. Finding out who and why is going to take time.”
“Once we’ve got the knife we’ll nd out who paid him,” Gol
assured him.
“We’ll see. I’ve a hunch it will take more than that.”
Gol nodded, then frowned.
“Something else?” Cery asked.
The big man bit his lip, then sighed. “Well … you know how Neg
thought that magic must have been used to break into your
hideout?”
“Yes.” Cery frowned.
“Dern agrees with him. Said there was no sign of picking. That
he’d put in some putty when he made the lock so he’d be able to
tell.”
Dern was the lockmaker who had designed and installed the
locking system on Cery’s hideout.
“Could it have been a very clever lock pick? Or even Dern
himself?”
Gol shook his head. “He showed me a lever that would only turn if
the lock was undone from the inside – inside the lock, that is –
which could only be done with magic. I asked him why he bothered,
and he said to protect himself. He won’t ever promise his locks are
safe against magic, so he needs to prove that’s the cause if they’re
ever broken into. I don’t know. It seems a bit far to go to. Could be
he’s making it up to cover himself.”
Or maybe not. Cery felt his skin prickle. Perhaps he had been
wrong. Perhaps nding out how the killers had reached his family
was important.
He would question Dern himself, and inspect the lock, to be sure.
But if it proved to be true then he had one clue to his family’s killer.
A clue that, though disturbing, was a start, at least.
“I need to have a chat with our lockmaker.”
Gol nodded. “I’ll arrange it now.”
Sonea regarded the man sitting across the table from her and
wondered, not for the rst time that evening, why he had bothered
coming to see her. Seeking to sway the vote of the Higher Magicians
on the petition was normal and expected for both petitioners and
opposition. But surely it was obvious how she would vote, when her
origins and sympathies were clearly with the lower class. Why waste
the time, when his e orts would be better spent persuading other
Higher Magicians to take his side?
“The rule has clearly been applied unfairly, most often in the case
of lower-class novices,” Regin conceded. “But the fact is, some do
come from families involved in criminal activities.”
“I regularly heal people involved in criminal activities,” she told
him. “And I know people in the city who earn money in less than
legal ways. That does not make me a criminal. Neither does a
magician become a criminal because a relative happens to be one.
Surely it is enough that a magician – or novice – behaves as we wish
them to.”
“If only we could trust that they would,” Regin replied. “But it is
true of all novices and magicians, no matter their background and
fortune, that those exposed through family or friends to dishonest
people and business are more likely to succumb to the temptation of
criminal involvement than those who are not.” He grimaced. “I
believe this rule helps them, particularly when they are unable to
help themselves. It can be an excuse to back out of a situation when
under pressure from others.”
“Or it can drive them to rebel, when the rule is seen to be unfairly
upheld. Or if it is inadvertently broken then they may reason that
having broken one rule it will not matter so much if they break
another. Then there are those who nd what is most forbidden is
the most exciting.”
“For which we need the deterrent e ect of the rule.”
“Deterrent or, perversely, encouragement?” She sighed. “The
weakness of this rule is that it is inconsistently applied – and I don’t
believe that can be resolved.”
“I agree that is the weakness, but not that it cannot be resolved.”
Regin leaned back in his chair and closed his eyes. “The trouble is,
things have changed. Crime has seeped up into the higher classes
like damp rising through the walls. It is they we need the rule for,
not the lower classes.”
Sonea raised her eyebrows. “Surely you don’t believe that the
higher classes weren’t gambling and whoring in the past? I can tell
you some stories—”
“No.” Regin opened his eyes and looked at her. “I’m not talking
about the usual mischief. This is bigger. Nastier. And far more
organised.”
Sonea opened her mouth to ask him to elaborate, but was
interrupted by a knock at the door. She turned away and sent a little
magic out to unlatch the door, and as it swung inward she felt her
heart lift as Jonna entered the room, carrying a large platter laden
with food.
Sonea’s aunt and servant looked from her to Regin, then bowed
politely. “Lord Regin.” She set the platter down, then glanced at
Sonea and took a step back.
“Don’t leave for my sake.” Regin rose and turned to face Sonea. “I
will return another time.” He inclined his head. “Thank you for
hearing me out, Black Magician Sonea.”
“Good night, Lord Regin,” she replied.
Jonna stepped aside to allow him past. As the door closed behind
him, the woman raised an eyebrow.
“Did I interrupt?” she asked.
“Yes, but it doesn’t matter.”
As her aunt arranged the covered dishes on the table, Sonea sighed
and looked around the room.
When she had rst seen inside the rooms in the Magicians’
Quarters, she had been impressed by how luxurious they were, but
hadn’t noticed anything unusual about their size. She hadn’t known
that they were small compared to the houses most higher-class men
and women lived in. Each suite contained two to four rooms,
depending on the size of the magician’s family, and the rooms were
of a modest size.
Aside from the occasional complaint, most magicians were willing
to live in such small quarters in order to reside within the Guild.
They had adapted to the restrictions. They did not eat at a dining
table, but instead meals were served on a low table set before the
guest room chairs. The only exceptions were the formal meals of the
Guild, served at a long dining table in the Banquet Room within a
purpose-built building.
Though there was another exception – the small dining room in
the High Lord’s Residence.
A memory ashed through her mind of that room, and avours
she hadn’t tasted in years. She found herself wondering, not for the
rst time, what had happened to Akkarin’s servant, Takan, the
Sachakan ex-slave who had cooked such amazing meals. Nothing
had been heard or seen of him since the invasion. She had always
hoped he had survived.
Jonna sat down with a heavy sigh of relief. Sonea looked down at
the cooling dishes on the table. It wasn’t an exotic meal, just the
usual fare from the Guild kitchens. She frowned. It should have been
Lorkin who had interrupted Regin.
“He’ll be here soon,” Jonna assured her, guessing the source of her
worry. “He wouldn’t dare miss a meal with his mother.”
Sonea humphed. “He seems quite prepared to defy me and get
himself killed in Sachaka. Why would a mere missed dinner bother
him?”
“Because he’d have me to answer to as well,” Jonna replied.
Sonea met her aunt’s eyes and smiled. “You may as well go. I’ll
only end up wearing your ears out.”
“My ears are robust enough. Besides, if he doesn’t come we can’t
let all this food go to waste.”
“You know I’ll wait until well after it’s spoiled, so there’s no point
the two of us staying hungry while we wait. Go. Ranek must be
hungry.”
“He’s working late tonight and will eat over at the servants’
quarters.” Jonna rose and examined the bookshelves, then brought a
rag out of her uniform and wiped a shelf.
There’s no budging her, Sonea thought. After coming to stay in the
Guild in order to help Sonea through her pregnancy, birth and
motherhood, Jonna and Ranek had settled in and found places as
servants – Jonna as Sonea’s servant and Ranek among the robe-
makers. Their two children had grown up here, had played with
Lorkin and eventually gained well-paid places as servants in rich
homes in the city. Jonna was well pleased with this. It was the best
anyone of her class could hope for. Only by becoming a magician
could someone born outside the Houses enter the country’s noble
class.
A knock brought their attention to the door. Sonea drew in a deep
breath, then sent a little magic toward the door latch. It clicked
open and Lorkin stepped inside, looking contrite. She sighed with
relief.
“Sorry I’m late,” he said. “Mother. Jonna.” He nodded to them
both. “The meeting didn’t nish until a few minutes ago.”
“Well, you’re just in time,” Jonna said, walking to the door. “Any
longer and I was going to eat your meal for you.”
“Why don’t you stay and join us?” he asked, smiling hopefully.
She gave him a measured look. “And have the two of us telling you
what a fool you are?”
He blinked, then grinned ruefully. “Good night, Jonna.”
She sni ed in amusement, before she slipped out of the door,
pulling it closed behind her.
Sonea looked at him. He met her eyes brie y, and looked around
the room.
“Is something di erent?” he asked.
“No.” She gestured to the other chair. “Sit down. Eat. No point
letting the food get any colder.”
He nodded and they began to ll their plates with food. Sonea
noted he ate with his usual enthusiasm. Or was he hurrying? Did he
want this meal over with? To escape his overbearing mother and
stop being reminded of things he wanted to ignore – like the risks in
travelling to Sachaka?
She waited until the meal was over and he looked a bit more
relaxed, before raising the subject he must know she’d invited him
here in order to discuss.
“So,” she began. “Why Sachaka?”
He blinked and turned to meet her eyes.
“Because … because it’s where I want to go.”
“But why do you want to go there? Of all the places, it is the most
dangerous – especially for you.”
“Lord Maron doesn’t think so. Nor does Lord Dannyl. At least, they
don’t think it will be any more dangerous for me than for anyone
else.”
Sonea looked at him closely. “That is only because they don’t
believe something unless they see proof. The only way they can see
proof that it is dangerous for you to enter Sachaka is to take you
there and observe something bad happen to you.”
His eyes narrowed. “Then you don’t have proof either.”
“Not that sort of proof.” She forced a smile. “I’d hardly be a
responsible parent if I took you to Sachaka to test my belief that it is
dangerous.”
“So how do you know it’s dangerous?”
“From what your father told me. From what Guild Ambassadors
and traders have con rmed since. They all agree that Sachakans are
bound by their code of honour to seek revenge for the death of a
family member – even if they didn’t like that family member, and
even if that family member was an outcast.”
“But the Guild Ambassadors looked into it. They said the family of
Kariko and Dakova did not want revenge. The brothers had been a
liability to them; it was clearly a relief to them that they had died.”
“They also said that the family had gained some admiration for
the brother’s daring invasion, despite the fact they were outcasts
and the invasion failed.” Sonea shrugged. “It is easier to feel
gratitude and loyalty to someone after they are dead. You can’t
discount the fact that the Ambassadors only spoke to some family
members, not all. That if the head of the family expressed one view
then others who disagreed would stay quiet.”
“But they wouldn’t act against the head of the family, either,” he
pointed out.
“Not in any way that could be traced to them.”
Lorkin shook his head in frustration. “Nobody is going to slip
poison into my food or cut my throat in my sleep. Even if I wasn’t
able to use magic to treat one and shield against the other, nobody
is going to risk breaking the peace between our countries.”
“Or else they’ll see you as the perfect excuse to spoil it.” Sonea
leaned forward. “They might be o ended that the Guild sent
Akkarin’s son there. Your little sight-seeing trip might ruin
everything the Guild has worked for since the invasion.”
His eyes widened, then his face hardened.
“It’s not a sight-seeing trip. I … I want to help Lord Dannyl. I think
what he’s trying to do is … is … it could help us. By looking into the
past we might nd new knowledge – new magic – that could help us
defend ourselves. Perhaps we won’t have to use black magic any
more.”
For a moment Sonea could not speak. Surprise was quickly
followed by a wave of guilt.
“You’re not on a quest to save me, or something, are you?” she
asked, her voice unintentionally weak.
“No!” He shook his head. “If we found such magic it would help us
all. It might even help the Sachakans. If they didn’t need black
magic they might be less resistant to ending slavery.”
Sonea nodded. “It seems to me that anyone could go looking for
this new magic. Lord Dannyl is already seeking it. Why do you have
to go?”
Lorkin paused. “Lord Dannyl is only interested in lling in the
gaps in history. I’m more interested in how that history – that
knowledge – could be used now. And in the future.”
She felt a chill run down her spine. A quest for magical
knowledge. Exactly what had spurred Akkarin on to explore the
world, and eventually enter Sachaka. And that quest had ended
very, very badly.
“Such a desire for knowledge led to your father becoming a slave,”
she told him, “and he was lucky it only led to that, and not his
death.”
A thoughtful look passed over Lorkin’s face, then he straightened
and shook his head.
“But this is di erent. I’m not wandering, unwelcome and
uninformed, into a hostile land. The Guild knows much more about
Sachaka now. Sachakans know more about us.”
“The Guild knows only what the Sachakans have allowed us to
know. There must be – will be – plenty that was kept from our
Ambassadors. They can’t be completely sure you will be safe there.”
He nodded. “I won’t argue that there’s no risk. But it is up to the
Higher Magicians to decide if the risk is higher for me.”
He has doubts, she thought. He isn’t turning a blind eye to the risks.
“And I’m sure you’ll make them consider every possible
consequence,” he added. He looked up at her. “If I promise that I
will come home the moment Lord Dannyl or I have the slightest
suspicion of danger, will you withdraw your protest?”
She smiled wryly. “Of course not.”
He scowled.
“I am your mother,” she reminded him. “I’m supposed to stop you
harming yourself.”
“I’m not a child any more. I’m twenty years old.”
“But you are still my son.” She met his gaze, holding it despite the
anger in his eyes. “I know you will be angry at me if I succeed in
preventing you going. I’d rather that than you were dead. I’d rather
you joined the Lonmar cult and I never saw you again. At least I’d
know you were alive and happy.” She paused. “You say you are not
a child any more. Then ask yourself: are you doing this, even only
partly, in order to defy your mother? How much of your wanting to
go comes from wanting to make your mark as an adult? If you took
those two desires away, would you want to go as much?”
Lorkin said nothing, but his face was tight with anger. Suddenly
he stood up.
“You don’t understand. I nally nd something worth doing and
you … you have to try to spoil it. Why can’t you just wish me luck
and be glad that I might achieve something with my life instead of
sitting around getting drunk or taking roet?”
His face red, he strode to the door and left her room.
Leaving Sonea frozen, unable to do anything but stare at the door,
her heart torn between love and pride, the determination to protect
him and the fear that she might fail.
CHAPTER 6
THE HEARING
The Good Company was one of the largest bolhouses in the south of
the city. As Cery and Gol walked in, they were bu eted by the heat
of bodies, roar of voices and rich, sweet scent of bol. Men
outnumbered women, both standing at tables xed to the oor.
There were no chairs. Chairs did not last long. The brawls that
broke out here were famous throughout the city, though by the time
the stories reached Northside they’d been embellished well beyond
physical possibilities.
Making his way through the crowd, Cery took in the atmosphere
and noted the clientele without looking at anyone long enough to
draw attention. Near the back of the huge room were doorways.
These led downstairs to the basement, where a di erent sort of
company was for hire.
Sitting on a bench near one of the doorways was a plump middle-
aged woman in bright, overly fancy clothing.
“Why is it that house-mothers always look the same?” Gol
murmured.
“Sly Lalli is tall and slim,” Cery pointed out. “Goody Sis is short
and petite.”
“But the rest are rather similar. Big, busty and—”
“Quiet. She’s coming over.”
The woman had seen them watching her, hauled herself to her feet
and was making her way toward them. “You looking for Aunty?
She’s over there.” She pointed. “Hey Aunty!” she shouted.
They both turned to see a tall, elegant woman with long red hair
swivel on her heel to regard them. At a gesture from the plump
woman she smiled and strode forward.
“Here for some good company, are we?” she said. She looked at
Gol, who was watching the other woman returning to her seat.
“People always assume Martia runs the place,” she said. “But she’s
here keeping an eye on her son, who works in the servery. Like to
go downstairs?”
“Yes. I’m here to see an old friend,” Cery told her.
She smiled knowingly. “As are we all. Which old friend would that
be?”
“Terrina.”
The woman’s eyebrows rose. “That one, eh? Well, no man asks for
her who doesn’t already know what he’s getting. I’ll take you to
her.”
She led them through the doorway down a short ight of stairs
into a room beneath the bolhouse. It was as large as the room
above, but was lled with rows of cubicles. Paper screens were
attached to the sides, and most were closed to hide the interior –
and from the sounds coming from all sides most of the cubicles were
being used for the purpose they were built for.
Aunty led them to a cubicle near the centre of the room. The
screens were open. Inside was a single chair. It was a generously
sized chair, with a large cushioned seat and sturdy arms. All of the
rooms were furnished thus. The women here did not want their
customers to be so comfortable they’d fall asleep and prevent them
servicing more customers. Cery turned to nod at Gol, who took up a
position a few steps away, outside another empty room.
As Cery moved into the cubicle, Aunty closed the screens. Sitting
down, he listened to the sounds nearby, then extended his focus
beyond the moans and laughs in search of sounds that didn’t belong.
The sound of breathing. Of footsteps. Of the rustle of cloth.
His nose caught a scent that brought a rush of memories, many
years old. He smiled.
“Terrina,” he murmured, turning to the back of the little room.
A panel of the wall slid aside, revealing a woman with short hair
and dark clothing. She looks just the same. Perhaps that little crease
between her brows is a bit deeper. She was a little too lean and
muscular to be called beautiful, but Cery had always found her
athletic build attractive. As she recognised him, her eyebrows rose
and she relaxed.
“Well, well. I haven’t seen you in a long time. What must it be?
Five years?”
Cery shrugged. “I told you I was getting married.”
“So you did.” The assassin leaned against the side of the cubicle
and tilted her head to one side, her dark eyes as inscrutable as
always. “You also said you were the loyal type. I assumed you’d
found another, shall we say, side interest.”
“You were never a side interest,” Cery told her. “Life is too
complicated for more than one lover at a time.”
She smiled. “Sweet of you to say so. I can’t say the same in return
– but you knew that.” Then her expression grew serious. Stepping
inside, she pulled the panel closed. “You’re here for business, not
pleasure.” It was not a question; it was a statement.
“You always did read me too easily,” he said.
“No, I just pretend to. Who do you need killed?” Her eyes ashed
with eagerness and anticipation. “Anyone annoyed you lately?”
“Information.”
Her shoulders dropped with disappointment. “Why, why, why? All
the time they want information.” She threw up her hands. “Or if
they want the full deal they coward out of it before I can even get
my knives sharp.” She shook her head, then looked at him
hopefully. “Will the information lead to the full deal?”
She enjoys her work far too much, Cery thought. Always did. It was
part of what was so exciting about her.
“It might, but then I’d rather do the job myself.”
Terrina’s lips formed a pout. “Typical.” Then she smiled and
waved a hand. “But I can’t grudge you, if it’s that personal. So what
do you need to know?”
Cery drew in a deep breath, bracing himself for the stab of pain
that would come with what he was about to say.
“Who broke into my hideout and killed my wife and sons,” he said
quietly, so none of the other patrons would hear. “If you don’t know
for sure, then any gossip you’ve heard will do.”
She blinked and stared at him.
“Oh,” was all she said. She regarded him thoughtfully. The gossip
of assassins rarely spread beyond their ranks. All accepted that it
could be bought, for a high price, but if it led to another assassin
losing trade or being killed the seller would be punished severely.
“You know how much that will cost?”
“Of course … depending on if you have the information I need.”
She nodded, dropped into a crouch so she was at eye level, and
stared at him earnestly. “Only for you, Cery. How long ago did it
happen?”
“Nine days.”
She frowned and gazed into the distance. “I’ve heard nothing like
that. Most assassins would have put it about by now. Getting into a
Thief’s hideout is impressive. He’ll have tried to kill you there
because it proves he’s clever. Tell me how he did it.”
He described the unbroken locks, the ambushed guards, but left
out what the lockmaker had said about magic.
“I suppose they’d keep their mug shut if they were paid enough. It
would cost. So the client is rich, or has saved up a long time. Either
that or they did it themselves, or it was someone close to you who
knew the way in – but I suppose you’ve looked into that. Or …” Her
gaze snapped to him. “Or else it’s the Thief Hunter.”
Cery frowned. “But why would he wait until I went out and then
kill my family?”
“Maybe he didn’t know you’d gone out. Maybe he didn’t know you
had a wife and children. I didn’t tell anyone you were getting
married, though that was ’cause I didn’t believe it. And if you hid
them well enough …” She shrugged. “He got in, they saw him, he
had to kill them ’cause they could tag him.”
“If only there was a way I could be sure.” Cery sighed.
“Every killer has their leavings. Signs. Habits. Skills. You can tag
’em from those, if you’ve got enough killings to compare.” She
sighed and stood up. “I’d tell you the details about the Thief Hunter,
except we’re keeping them to ourselves for now, in case one of us is
the killer.”
Cery nodded. When Terrina said she would not give any more
information, nothing could charm it out of her.
She looked at him and shook her head. “Sorry, I haven’t been
much help. Can’t do anything but get you spooked about someone
you already know about, and I can’t tell you anything useful about.”
She looked away and frowned. “Can’t really charge you much for
that.”
Cery opened his mouth to start bartering over the fee he’d o er
her for the trouble of meeting with him, but she looked up
suddenly.
“Oh, there’s one thing I can tell you, because nobody’s taking it
seriously.”
“Yes?”
“People reckon the Thief Hunter uses magic.”
Cold rushed through Cery. He stared at her. “Why do they say
that?”
“I thought it was because he was so good, people thought he must
use magic. But I had a chat to a guard at a bolhouse once, who used
to work for one of the Thieves that were done, and he says he saw a
streak of light, and things ying through the air. Of course,
everyone says it was the knock on the head making him see things,
but … he was so sure of it, and not a man without a bit of good
sense.”
“How interesting,” Cery said. It could be nothing but fancy and
rumour. If I hadn’t seen for myself the lockmaker’s evidence I wouldn’t
believe it. But added to other rumours of magic occurring where it
should not, he was beginning to wonder how much truth there was
in it.
If it was true, then either a Guild magician was getting involved in
things he or she shouldn’t be, or there was a rogue magician in the
city. Either way, they could have been involved in the murder of his
family.
He suddenly thought of Skellin’s obvious desire to hire his own
rogue magician. If this Thief Hunter is a rogue, he’ll have no problem
getting close to Skellin. Hmm, should I warn Skellin? But surely he’s
already heard of the rumours of magic … Ah! Maybe that’s why he
asked about magic. He knew I’d had connections to the Guild in the past
and was testing me to see if I still did. Which would mean he suspected
I’d hired the Thief Hunter.
Then another possibility occurred to him.
Had a Thief come to this conclusion and sent an assassin to kill me,
not realising they’d hired the very same magic-wielding assassin they fear
so much? He frowned. At least I know it couldn’t have been Skellin, as
he wouldn’t have arranged to meet with me and sent an assassin to kill
me in my home at the same time.
He shook his head. The possibilities seemed endless. But here was
this mention of magic again. It had been used to open the lock of his
hideout, and it was believed to be used by the Thief Hunter.
Coincidence? Perhaps. But it was the only clue he had, so he may as
well pursue it.
L ike many low-born novices from the poorer parts of the city,
Norrin was of small stature. But he looked even smaller walking
between the two Warriors escorting him into the Guildhall.
Sonea felt her heart twist in sympathy as he glanced up at the rows
of magicians staring down at him on either side, turned white, then
set his gaze on the oor.
It is cruel to drag him before the entire Guild, she thought. A Hearing
before the Higher Magicians would have been intimidating and
humiliating enough. But someone wanted to make an example of him.
By Guild rules, any novice who failed to attend the University or
reside in the Grounds without permission to live elsewhere was
considered a potential rogue, and must be brought before the
assembled Guild to explain themselves, even if only the Higher
Magicians were to judge their actions and decide on a punishment.
If he hadn’t been found right before a Meet day, he might have been
spared this. But it is much easier to tack a Hearing onto the end of a
Meet than arrange a separate one. I suspect if Osen had been faced with
getting the whole Guild together just for this Hearing, he’d have bent the
rules and kept it to the Higher Magicians.
The escorts stopped at the front, Norrin halting beside them and
bowing to the Higher Magicians. Administrator Osen glanced back
at the Higher Magicians – at Sonea. For a second their gazes locked,
then he looked away.
Others had noted his glance, and she found herself the subject of
speculative looks from High Lord Balkan, Lady Vinara and Director
Jerrik. She resisted the urge to shrug to indicate she had no idea
why Osen had chosen that moment to look at her, instead ignoring
them and keeping her attention on the novice.
The Administrator approached Norrin, whose shoulders hunched,
but he didn’t look up.
“Novice Norrin,” Osen said. “You have been absent from the Guild
Grounds and University for two months. You have ignored requests
that you return, forcing us to take you into custody. You know the
law restricting a novice’s movements and where he or she may
reside. Why have you broken it?”
Norrin’s shoulders rose and fell as he took a deep breath and let it
out again. He straightened and looked up at the Administrator.
“I don’t want to be a magician,” he said. “I’d want to, if I didn’t
want to look after my family more.” He stopped and looked down
again. Sonea could not see Osen’s face, but his posture was all
patient expectation.
“Your family?” he prompted.
Norrin looked around, then ushed. “My little brothers and sisters.
Mother can’t look after them. She’s sick.”
“And nobody else can take on this responsibility?” Osen asked.
“No. My sister – next oldest after me – died last year. The rest are
too young. I didn’t use magic once,” he added quickly. “I know I’m
not supposed to if I’m not gonna be a magician.”
“If you do not wish to be a magician – if you wish to leave the
Guild – you must have your powers blocked,” Osen told him.
The novice blinked, then looked up at the Administrator with such
hope that Sonea felt a pain in her chest. “You can do that?” Norrin
said in a barely audible voice. “Then I can go look after my family
and nobody will mind?” He frowned. “It doesn’t cost a lot, does it?”
Osen said nothing, then shook his head. “It costs nothing, except
in lost opportunities for yourself. Can’t you wait a few more years?
Wouldn’t it be better for your family if you were a magician?”
Norrin’s face darkened. “No. I can’t see them. I can’t get money to
them. I can’t make Mother’s … sickness go away. And the others’re
too young to look after themselves.”
Osen then turned to the Higher Magicians. “I suggest we discuss
this.”
Sonea nodded her agreement along with the others. The
Administrator indicated that the escort should take the boy out of
the hall. As soon as the doors closed, Lady Vinara sighed loudly and
turned to face them.
“The boy’s mother is a whore. She is not sick, she is addicted to
roet.”
“It is true,” University Director Jerrik said. “But he has not picked
up the habits of his mother. He is a sensible young man, studious
and well mannered, with strong powers. It would be a pity to lose
him.”
“He is too young to know what he is giving up,” Lord Garrel
added. “He will regret sacri cing magic for the sake of his family.”
“But he would regret it more if he sacri ced his family for magic,”
Sonea could not help adding.
Faces turned toward her. She had not made a habit of
participating in the debates of the Higher Magicians these last
twenty years. At rst, because she felt too young and inexperienced
in Guild politics to contribute, later because it had become clear to
her that her position among them had been bestowed not out of
respect but out of a begrudging acknowledgement of her powers and
assistance in defending the country.
Yet whenever I speak I seem to attract a lot more attention than is
warranted.
“You have much in common with Norrin, Black Magician Sonea,”
Osen began. “In having not wanted to join the Guild – though not
due to family circumstances, of course,” he added. “What would you
suggest we do to persuade him to stay?”
Sonea resisted the urge to roll her eyes. “He wants to visit and
help his family. Grant him that and I’m sure he’d be delighted to
remain with us.”
The Higher Magicians exchanged glances. She looked at Rothen.
He grimaced, communicating in that one look how unlikely it was
the Higher Magicians would agree to that.
“But that would result in Guild money going to a whore, and no
doubt feed her addiction,” Garrel pointed out.
“Plenty more Guild money goes toward hiring the services of
whores each night than would be required to keep Norrin’s family
fed and accommodated for the year,” Sonea replied, then winced at
the tartness in her voice.
The magicians paused again. And this, too, always seems to happen
when I dare to speak, she mused. Lady Vinara had covered her mouth
with a hand, she noticed.
“It will have to be up to Norrin to ensure that the money he gives
his mother does not go toward roet,” Sonea told them in what she
hoped was a more conciliatory tone. “It is clearly not his aim to kill
his mother.” Then she had a ash of inspiration. “If he agrees to
stay, send him to the hospices to work – as punishment if you must.
I will arrange for his family to visit. That way he can see them and
be seen to be disciplined for breaking the law.”
There were nods all around.
“An excellent solution,” Lord Osen said. “Perhaps you can
persuade his mother to give up the drug at the same time.” He
looked at her expectantly. She said nothing, just met his gaze
levelly. I’m not stupid enough to make any promises, when it comes to
roet.
Osen looked away, turning to the others. “Does anyone object, or
have another suggestion?”
The Higher Magicians shook their heads. Osen called in the escorts
and Norrin. When Sonea’s suggestion was o ered to him, he gazed
up at her with open gratitude. That’s a little too much like adoration,
she thought. I had better make sure I keep him working hard, so he
doesn’t start idolising me – or, more importantly, thinking that breaking
rules leads to him getting his way.
As Osen announced the Hearing and Meet concluded, and Sonea
rose and started descending the stairs, Lady Vinara stepped out to
block her path.
“It is good to see you speaking your mind at last,” the elderly
Healer said. “You should do so more often.”
Sonea blinked in surprise, and found she could think of nothing to
say that wouldn’t sound trite. Vinara’s smile changed to a more
serious look. She glanced down at where Norrin had been standing.
“This case clearly demonstrates the need to make a prompt
decision on whether to change or abolish the rule against
associating with criminals and characters of low repute.” She
lowered her voice. “I am in favour of a clari cation. The rule is too
easily interpreted in a way that would restrict the work of my
Healers.”
Sonea nodded and managed a smile. “Mine even more so. When
do you think the Administrator will call for a decision?”
Vinara frowned. “He has not yet concluded whether it should be a
decision for us or the Guild. It may be perceived as unfair, should it
be the former, as you are the only Higher Magician who might be
seen to represent the magicians and novices of lower-class origins.
But if we open it up to the entire Guild …”
“It may not make that much di erence,” Sonea nished. “And
there are sure to be remarks made that, stated publicly, may cause
lasting resentment.”
Vinara shrugged. “Oh, I don’t think we can avoid that. But it will
cause a lot more fuss and work, and Osen is not sure the issue
warrants that.”
“Well, then.” Sonea smiled grimly and stepped past the woman.
“Perhaps Norrin’s case will convince him otherwise.”
Lorkin gazed out at the elds beside the road, wondering how long
it would take for him to get used to the greenness of it all. For three
days they had travelled across the wasteland, and it felt as if the dry
dustiness of the place had lled every crease in his skin and hollow
of his lungs. He was looking forward to a bath more than he had
ever before in his life.
At night they had taken turns keeping watch for the approach of
Ichani, or sleeping in the carriage. The wasteland was considered
the most dangerous part of their journey – hence the precautions –
but no attacks by outcast Sachakan magicians had ever been made
on Guild magicians since the invasion. Previous Guild Ambassadors
had seen gures in the distance watching them, but none had ever
approached.
Lorkin doubted they could have held o an attack by Ichani
bandits for long, but the previous Ambassador had told them that
they’d always relied on the hope that looking like they were
prepared for a ght was deterrent enough. The Ichani roaming the
wastes and mountains knew that the Guild had managed to kill
Kariko and his gang, though not how they had, and so kept a
cautious distance from any robed visitors.
On the second day a sandstorm had forced Dannyl to sit beside the
driver and protect horse and carriage, as well as keep the road
visible, with a magical barrier. On the third day the sands gave way
to tussocks and stunted bushes. As the vegetation thickened, grazing
animals had appeared. Then those gave way to the rst struggling
crops, which slowly improved in health and lushness until all looked
appealingly rural and normal – so long as one didn’t look too closely
at the south-western horizon.
Now and then clusters of white buildings and walls appeared
several hundred paces from the road. These were the estates of
Sachaka’s powerful landowners, the Ashaki. Only when they passed
the rst of these did Lorkin realise that the ruins the carriage had
passed in the wasteland had probably once looked just like them.
Tonight, Lorkin and Dannyl were to visit and stay with an Ashaki.
Lorkin was not sure how much of the nervous tingle of anticipation
he felt at nally meeting a Sachakan was excitement or dread.
Dannyl had met with the Sachakan Ambassador in Imardin, but
Lorkin had not been con rmed as his assistant at the time and so
was not invited to the meeting.
I want us to hurry up and get there, but how much of that is due to
hunger and wanting a comfortable bed and a whole night’s sleep?
The carriage slowed, then turned o the main road. Lorkin’s heart
began racing. Leaning close to the window he saw white buildings
at the end of the narrow road the carriage was following. The walls
were smooth and curved, with no sharp edges. As they drew closer,
he could see, through an archway ahead, thin gures moving about
inside a space beyond the wall. One stopped within the archway,
then turned to wave at the others before moving out of sight.
When they passed through the archway they found themselves in a
near-deserted courtyard. Whoever the people were, they had made
themselves scarce. A single gure stepped out of a narrow doorway
as the carriage drew to a halt, and dropped smoothly face-down on
the ground.
Clearly he was a slave. Lorkin looked at Dannyl, who smiled
grimly and moved to the door of the carriage. As the Ambassador
climbed out, the man on the ground did not move. Lorkin followed.
He looked up at the driver. The man wore a frown of disapproval.
Well, we were told to expect this. It doesn’t make it any less
discom ting. And it feels a bit rude, too. Still, they do things di erently
here. The master of the house does not emerge to greet his guests. He
welcomes them once they’re inside.
“Take us to your master,” Dannyl ordered. His tone was neither
commanding, nor did it sound like a request. Lorkin decided this
was a good compromise and resolved to do the same when
addressing a slave.
The prone man rose and, without looking up or saying anything,
moved back through the doorway into the building. Dannyl and
Lorkin followed. They entered a corridor. The interior walls were
the same as the exterior, though perhaps a little smoother. Looking
closely, Lorkin saw that there were ngermarks in the surface. The
walls had been coated with some kind of paste. He wondered if
there was a solid stone or brick core to the walls, or if they had been
made entirely of some sort of clay, built up in successive layers.
Reaching the end of the corridor, the slave stepped aside and
threw himself on the oor. Dannyl and Lorkin entered a large room,
the white walls decorated with hangings and carvings. A man was
sitting on one of three low stools, and now he rose and smiled at
them.
“Welcome. I am Ashaki Tariko. You must be Ambassador Dannyl
and Lord Lorkin.”
“We are,” Dannyl replied. “It is an honour to meet you and we
thank you for inviting us to stay in your home.”
The man was a head shorter than Dannyl, but his broad stature
gave the impression of strength. His skin was the typical Sachakan
brown – lighter than a Lonmar’s but darker than an Elyne’s honey-
brown. From the wrinkles about his mouth and eyes Lorkin guessed
he was between forty and fty years old. He wore a short jacket
covered in colourful stitchwork over some sort of plain garment,
and a pair of trousers in the same cloth as the jacket, but not as
elaborately decorated.
“Come sit with me,” Ashaki Tariko invited, gesturing to the stools.
“I set watchers on the road to alert me when you were near, so I
could have a meal prepared ready for your arrival.” He turned to
the prone slave. “Alert the kitchen that our guests are here,” he
ordered.
The man leapt to his feet and hurried away. As Lorkin followed
Dannyl to the stools, he caught a ash of something metallic at
Tariko’s waist and looked closer. An elaborately decorated knife
sheath and handle hung from his belt. It was quite beautiful, set
with jewels and inlaid with gold.
Then Lorkin felt a chill run down his spine.
It’s a black magician’s knife. Ashaki Tariko is a black magician. For a
moment he felt a rush of fear that was strangely exhilarating, but it
faded as quickly and left behind a disappointing cynicism. Yeah, and
so’s your mother, he found himself thinking, and he suddenly knew
that living in a land of black magicians wasn’t going to be as
thrilling and novel as he’d thought it would be.
His thoughts were interrupted by a stream of men and women,
dressed simply in cloth wrapped about their torso and bound with a
length of rope about their waist. They bore either a platter laden
with food, or pitchers and goblets. Exotic smells assaulted his nose
and he felt his stomach rumble in response. Each slave approached
Ashaki Tariko, burden held out before them and head bowed, then
knelt before him. The rst held the utensils with which the host and
guests would eat: a plate and a knife with a forked tip. Then goblets
were o ered and lled with wine. Finally there were successive
dishes, the master of the house selecting rst, then Dannyl, then
Lorkin. Tariko dismissed each slave with a quiet, “Go.”
The master of the house rst, Lorkin recited silently. Magicians
before non-magicians, Ashaki before landless free men, age before youth,
men before women. Only if a woman was a magician and head of her
family would she be served before men. And women often eat
separately from men anyway. I wonder if Ashaki Tariko has a wife.
The food was richly spiced, some so hot he had to stop and cool
his mouth with a mouthful of wine every few bites. He resisted as
long as possible, both in the hope he would grow used to the heat
sooner, and because he did not want to end up insensible from drink
– especially not on his rst night as a guest of a Sachakan black
magician.
While Dannyl and their host discussed the journey across the
wastes, the weather, the food and the wine, Lorkin watched the
slaves. The last of them to o er their burdens had waited the
longest, but their arms were steady. It was strange to have these
silent people in the room, all but ignored as Tariko and Dannyl
talked.
These people are Tariko’s possessions, he reminded himself. They are
put to work and bred like livestock. He tried to imagine what that
would be like, and shuddered. Only when the last of the food had
been o ered and the last slave dismissed was Lorkin able to pay
attention to the conversation.
“How does it a ect you, living this close to the wasteland?”
Dannyl asked.
Tariko shrugged. “If the wind comes from that direction it sucks
the moisture out of everything. It can ruin a crop if it blows too
long. Afterwards there will be a ne sanddust coating everything,
inside and outside.” He looked up, beyond the walls toward the
wasteland. “The wastes grow a little larger each year. One day,
maybe in a thousand years, the sands will meet those in the north,
and all Sachaka will be desert.”
“Unless it can be reversed,” Dannyl said. “Has anyone here
attempted to reclaim land from the wastes?”
“Many.” Of course we have, Tariko’s expression seemed to say.
“Sometimes successfully, but never permanently. Those who have
studied the wastes say that the fertile top layer of the land was
stripped away, and without it water is not retained and plants
cannot return.”
Dannyl’s gaze sharpened with interest. “But you have no idea
how?”
“No.” Tariko sighed. “Every few years it rains in the northern
desert, and within a few days the land turns green. The soil is rich
with ash from the volcanoes. It is only the lack of rain that keeps it
a desert. We have plenty of rain here but still nothing grows.”
“That sounds like a wonder to see,” Lorkin added in a murmur.
“The northern desert in ower, that is.”
Tariko smiled at him. “It is. The Duna tribes come south to harvest
the desert plants and sell the dried leaves, fruit and seeds in Arvice.
If you are lucky, such an event will happen during your stay, and
you will have the opportunity to enjoy some rare spices and
delicacies.”
“I hope so,” Lorkin said. “Though I can’t imagine anything more
exotic and delicious than the meal we just enjoyed.”
The Sachakan chuckled, pleased at the attery. “I have always said
that of all slaves, good cooks are worth the extra expense. And horse
trainers.”
Lorkin just managed to stop himself wincing at such a casual
reference to buying people and was glad that Tariko said no more
about it. After a discussion about foods native to Sachaka, in which
Tariko recommended they try some dishes and avoid others, the
Ashaki straightened his back.
“You must be tired and now that I have fed you I won’t keep you
from a bath and bed any longer.”
Dannyl looked disappointed as their host rose, but to Lorkin’s
relief did not protest. A gong rang out and two young women
hurried into the room to throw themselves on the oor.
“Take our guests to their rooms,” he ordered. Then he smiled at
Dannyl and Lorkin. “Rest well Ambassador Dannyl and Lord Lorkin.
I will see you again in the morning.”
Lifting the cover, Cery leaned close to the spy hole and squinted at
the room beyond. It was narrow, but very long, so the overall space
was generous. He hadn’t liked the shape, but it could be divided
into a string of smaller rooms, and escape routes spaced along the
length.
Several men were working within the room, covering the brick
walls with panelling, building the framework for the dividing walls,
and tiling the oor. Two were working on the replace, clearing a
blockage. As soon as they were nished and the mess cleared, work
would start on decorating, and Cery’s new hideout – and trap for the
Thief Hunter – would become a tasteful, luxurious space.
“Are you sure you want to use the same lockmaker?” Gol asked.
Cery turned to see his bodyguard’s eye illuminated by a small
circle of light from beyond another spy hole.
“Why wouldn’t I?”
“You said you didn’t think Dern betrayed you, and if nobody
betrays you then the Thief Hunter will never fall into our trap.”
Turning back to the spy hole, Cery watched the men working. “I
don’t want people thinking I’m blaming him.”
“I’m still a bit suspicious about the lock. Why would Dern build
into it a way to tell if magic had been used, if it was so unlikely
magic would be used on it?”
“Maybe he thought it was likely. After all, I’m a Thief. Thieves
have been getting murdered for some years now.”
“Then he must have reason to suspect they were killed with the
help of magic.”
“Perhaps he has. Perhaps he’s heard the rumours about the Thief
Hunter. But I’ve always found Dern to be habitually thorough to the
point of ridiculousness and I think that’s why he made it like that,
not that he knew anything about the Thief Hunter and his methods.”
Gol sighed. “Well … yes, he does seem that way at times. And
while he was thankful to get more work from you, he seemed, well,
nervous. Twitchy. Kept saying if the Thief Hunter and the Rogue
turned out to be real and the same then what other legends might
be true? Like the one about the giant ravis that eat people alive if
they go into the sewers, or come up and drag people o the Thieves’
Road.”
“He would have to wonder.” Cery shook his head. “I always
thought the Rogue was a myth, too. People have been saying there’s
a magician hiding in the city for twenty years, even though Senfel
rejoined the Guild after they pardoned him, and died of old age …
what? Is it nine or ten years ago?”
“Senfel put the idea into people’s heads – as did Sonea. Now every
strange occurrence that could be magical is evidence that more
rogues are about.”
“Seems they might have been right about that.” Cery scowled.
“But that’s more reason why we need to be sure before we tell
Sonea.”
Gol grunted in agreement. “Do you think we should tell Skellin
what we’re doing?”
“Skellin?” For a moment Cery wondered why, then he
remembered the agreement he’d made with the other Thief. “We
don’t know for sure if the person we’re baiting is the Thief Hunter. If
we nd evidence that he is, we’ll tell Skellin. Otherwise …” he
shrugged. “He never asked me to tell him if I found a rogue.”
For a while they both looked through the spy holes in silence, then
Cery let the cover of his hole swing back. The workmen knew of the
escape routes they were building, but not of the ones that already
existed, or of the spy holes Cery and Gol were watching them
through.
“Let’s go.”
The hole of light before Gol’s eye vanished. Cery began walking,
trailing a hand along the wall.
I wonder which one of the workmen I’ve hired will leak the location of
my new hideout. Though Cery always treated workers well, paying
them fairly and without delay, he could never be completely sure of
their loyalty or ability to keep secrets. He found out everything he
could about them: if they had family, if they cared about that
family, if they had debts, who they had worked for in the past, who
had worked for them, and if there was anyone, the Guard especially,
they’d rather not encounter.
Not this time. Gol has set the information gathering in motion, but
there isn’t enough time to be thorough, and that’s ne. For the trap to
work Cery needed someone to leak information about it. But if I
don’t take some precautions the Hunter might think it out of character,
and become suspicious.
The passage turned, then turned again.
“You can open the lamp now,” Cery murmured.
There was a pause, then a faint squeak, and the tunnel was
suddenly bathed in light.
“You know, any of those workers could be the Hunter.”
Cery glanced over his shoulder at his friend.
“Surely not.”
Gol shrugged. “Even the Hunter needs to eat and keep a roof over
his head. He’s got to have a job of some sort.”
“Unless he’s rich,” Cery pointed out, turning back again.
“Unless he’s rich,” Gol agreed.
Once, it would have been a safe bet to assume the Hunter was
rich. Only rich people learned magic. But these days, people of all
classes could join the Guild. And if the Hunter couldn’t a ord to
bribe people, he could always blackmail and threaten them –
possibly more e ectively using magic to scare people.
I wish I could ask Sonea if any magicians or novices have gone missing.
But I don’t want to risk meeting her again until I have proof there is a
rogue in the city.
And in the meantime, he had best make sure he got that proof
without getting himself killed.
CHAPTER 10
A NEW CHALLENGE
The crowd outside the Northside Hospice was smaller than usual.
Pale faces turned toward the carriage, eyes bright with hope but
expressions guarded. As the vehicle turned and passed between the
gates, Sonea sighed.
When the hospices had rst opened, hordes of sick had gathered
outside the doors, along with those hopeful of seeing the legendary
slum magician, former exile and defender of Kyralia. Those not
intimidated by her black robes had surrounded her, begging or
babbling, making it di cult to get inside the hospice and do the
work she needed to do. She could not bring herself to push them
away with magic. Other Healers had experienced similar problems,
as the sick not yet admitted to the hospice, or their families, begged
and pleaded for help.
So enclosed carriageways had been built beside the hospices, with
guards to man the gates, and a side entrance. They allowed Healers
to arrive and get from carriage to hospice without being harassed.
Sonea waited until the guards called out to indicate all was clear,
then climbed out of the carriage. As she turned to smile in thanks,
the two guards bowed. She heard the side door to the hospice open.
“ … and it’s about time – oh!”
Sonea turned to see Healer Ollia staring at her in horror.
“Sorry, er, Black Magician Sonea. I was … we were …”
“It’s I who should be apologising.” Sonea smiled. “I’m late. Or
rather, Healer Draven is. His mother has fallen ill, suddenly, so I’m
stepping in for him.” She stepped aside and nodded to the carriage.
“Go on. You must be tired.”
“Um. Thank you.” Flushed, Ollia hurried past and climbed into the
vehicle.
Turning away, Sonea entered the hospice. A large room full of
supplies with a central area of seating for exhausted Healers and
helpers formed a sanctuary of privacy between the carriageway
entrance and the public rooms. A young woman in green robes was
sitting in one of the chairs, the edge of her mouth quirked up in a
wry smile.
“Good evening, Black Magician Sonea,” Nikea said.
“Healer Nikea,” Sonea replied. She liked Nikea. The young Healer
had rst volunteered to help in the hospice not long after joining
the Guild, and discovered a love of both healing and helping people.
Her parents were servants for a family of one of the less powerful
Houses. “Looks quiet here tonight.”
“More or less.” Nikea shrugged. “Did I hear right? You’re replacing
Healer Draven?”
“Yes.”
Nikea rose. “Then I had better let Adrea know you’re here.”
“I’ll come with you.”
Sonea followed her through the door to the main part of the
hospice, locking it behind her with magic. As they walked down the
corridor, she listened to the sounds escaping the treatment rooms.
Rasping breathing told her there was a patient with respiratory
problems in one room, and groans from another doorway told of a
painful condition. All rooms, as always, were occupied – some with
both patient and the two family members that were allowed to stay
with and help tend to them.
There were too few Healers willing to work in the hospices to treat
the multitudes of sick visiting them, and between them they did not
have enough power to meet the demand. But if all of the Healers of
the Guild were made to work at them daily there still would not be
enough. Sonea had known she would have to run these places with
a limited supply of Healing power.
So they treated Healing power like a rare and powerful medicine.
Only those people who would not survive without it were Healed
with magic. The rest were treated with medicine and surgery.
This had revealed that the Guild’s Healers did not know as much
about non-magical healing as they’d thought they did. Those
Healers who had joined Sonea in treating the poor had begun to
expand and develop elds of knowledge that had been long
neglected. Some Healers still regarded non-magical healing as
primitive and unnecessary, but Lady Vinara, Head of Healers, was
not inclined to agree. She now sent novices favouring the Healing
discipline to Sonea to learn both how to apply non-magical healing,
and why it was still needed.
Turning into the main corridor, Nikea led Sonea to the front room
of the hospice. A short, plump woman with grey in her hair paced
the room, watching the people seated on benches around the walls
with her arms crossed and a stern expression. Sonea suppressed a
smile.
Adrea. One of our rst non-magician helpers.
When the rst hospice opened, Healers had spent as much of their
time talking with everyone who entered to nd out who was sick
and who wasn’t as they did treating people. They had to decide how
serious the illness or injury was, and pass the patient on to a Healer
with the appropriate experience and knowledge. Soon Healers were
complaining that they spend their time there herding people, not
Healing them. They tried allocating the task instead to novices, but
new novices were either too young or inexperienced to deal with
distressed patients and their families, and older ones needed to learn
something more than how to diagnose illnesses and ferry people
about.
It had been Lady Vinara’s idea to circulate a request among the
Houses for volunteers to help in the hospices. Sonea had expected
no response, so she was surprised when three women had appeared
at the door a few days later. She’d suddenly had to come up with
useful tasks that weren’t too menial for women of the higher classes,
but would not cause too many problems or damage if done badly.
Only one of those women had returned to the hospice after the
rst day, but after a few weeks Adrea had not only proven herself
capable of being helpful but soon persuaded three other women –
friends and relatives – to try out being “hospice helpers.”
A few weeks later more helpers began to arrive. Gossip about the
original helpers had spread, and general opinion was that they
should be admired for their noble sacri ce of time and willingness
to risk personal safety for the bene t of the city. Suddenly it was
fashionable to be a hospice helper and there was a ood of
volunteers.
The reality of the work soon dampened the enthusiasm of fad-
followers and the number of new volunteers settled to a steady rate.
The helpers that remained not only continued to work at the
hospices but organised themselves into shifts and held meetings to
discuss new and better ways that non-magicians could help the poor
and the Healers.
“Adrea,” Nikea called.
The woman turned and, seeing Sonea, bowed deeply. “Black
Magician Sonea,” she said.
“Adrea,” Sonea replied. “I’m taking Healer Draven’s place tonight.
Give me a few minutes, then send the rst one in.”
The woman nodded. Turning back to face the corridor, Sonea took
a step toward the Examination Room, then stopped and looked at
Nikea.
“Nothing needs any special attention out here?” she asked,
gesturing down the corridor to the patient rooms.
Nikea shook her head. “Nothing we can’t handle. There are three
of us working the rooms. All the patients have been fed and half of
them are probably asleep already. I’ll let you know if anything
comes up.”
Sonea nodded. She moved to the rst door to the left and opened
it. The room inside was large enough for two chairs, a locked
cupboard and a narrow bed along one wall. It was dark, so she
created a globe light and sent it hovering near the centre of the
ceiling.
Sitting down on one of the chairs, she took a deep breath and
readied herself for the rst of the patients. Adrea would ring a gong
if anyone arrived who needed immediate treatment. The rest came
to the Examination Room, where a Healer examined and questioned
them before either Healing them with magic or treating them with
medicine or minor surgery. If major surgery was needed but not
urgent they arranged for the patient to return another day.
A knock came from the door. Sonea drew a little magic and sent it
out to the handle, turning and tugging it inward. The man standing
beyond looked surprised as he saw nobody standing behind the
door, despite having visiting the hospice several times before.
“Stoneworker Berrin,” Sonea said. “Come in.”
He looked relieved to see her. He bowed, closed the door, moved
to the chair and sat down.
“I was hoping you’d be here,” he said.
She nodded. “How are you?”
Rubbing his hands together, he paused to think before answering.
“I don’t think it worked,” he nally said.
Sonea regarded him thoughtfully. He had rst come to the hospice
nearly a year before, refusing to say what was wrong with him.
She’d assumed something embarrassing and private, but what he’d
revealed, slowly and reluctantly, was an addiction to roet.
It had taken some courage to admit it, she knew. He was the sort
of man who worked hard and prided himself on doing “honest”
work. But when his wife had died bearing their rst child, which
hadn’t survived, he had been so wrapped up in grief and guilt that
he’d tried the wares of a rot-seller with a persuasive tongue. By the
time the pain had receded enough that he could resume his former
work he found he could not give up the drug.
At rst she had encouraged him to reduce the amount he took and
endure the aches, cravings and bad moods that came over him. He
had done well, but it had exhausted him. The desire for the
numbing, freeing sensation of roet did not diminish, however.
Eventually, after several months, Sonea took pity on him and
decided to see if magic could speed the process.
All Healers had agreed that roet addiction was not an illness, so to
use magic to cure it was a waste of a precious resource. Sonea had
agreed, but Berrin was a good man who had been taken advantage
of when most vulnerable. She had Healed him in secret.
“Why do you think it didn’t work?” she asked him.
He looked down, his eyes wide with distress. “I still want it. Not as
bad as before. I thought the need would grow less and less. But it
hasn’t. It’s like … a tap dripping. Quiet, but if it’s quiet it’s there,
nagging at you.”
Sonea frowned, then gestured for him to move closer. He shu ed
the chair toward hers. Reaching out, she placed a hand on either
side of his head and closed her eyes.
Healing him had been a strange experience. There had been
nothing obviously wrong with him. No break or tear or infection
that his body was already trying to deal with. Most of the time a
Healer could pick up from the body what was wrong and let it help
guide the application of magic to repair damage. Sometimes the
problem was too subtle, but allowing the body to use magic to
return it to its right state nearly always worked.
In Berrin there had been a feeling of distress coming from several
directions. It resided in the paths of sensation, and in his brain, but
was so subtle she could not comprehend how to x it. So she had let
his body guide her, and when the feeling of distress had gone she
knew her work was done.
The aches had gone, and his mood had lifted. He hadn’t said
anything about a lingering craving for roet, however. But maybe it
had been too subtle for him to notice initially. Or maybe he had
started taking it again.
Sending her mind forth, she sought the feeling of distress within
his body. To her surprise, she found nothing. Concentrating harder,
she detected natural healing around blisters on his hands and some
muscular soreness in his back. But as far as his body was concerned,
he was t and well.
She opened her eyes and removed her hands.
“There’s nothing wrong with you,” she said, smiling. “I can’t feel
any of the indicators I felt before.”
His face fell and he searched her gaze. “But … I’m not lying. It’s
still there.”
Sonea frowned. “That’s … odd.” She considered his steady gaze
and what she knew of him. He’s not the type to lie. The very idea that
people might think he’d lie is distressing to him. In fact, I expect his next
question to be—
“Do you think I’m making it up?” he asked in a low, fearful voice.
She shook her head. “But this is puzzling. And frustrating. How
can I heal what I can’t detect?” She spread her hands. “All I can say
is, give it time. It could be there’s some echo of the craving there.
Like the memory of someone’s touch or the sound of a voice. In
time, if you don’t refresh that memory, your body may forget it.”
He nodded, his expression thoughtful now. “I can do that. That
makes sense.” He straightened and looked at her expectantly.
She rose, and he followed suit. “Good. Come back and see me if it
gets worse.”
“Thank you.” He bowed awkwardly, then moved toward the door,
glancing back and smiling nervously as it swung open at a tug of her
magic.
As the door closed behind him, Sonea considered what she had
found – or failed to nd – in his body. Was it possible that magic
couldn’t heal away addiction? That roet made some sort of physical
change that was permanent and undetectable?
If that is the case, can a magician’s body heal away the e ects of his or
her own roet addiction? A magician’s body healed itself
automatically, which meant he or she was rarely ill and often lived
longer than non-magicians. If it can’t, then it’s possible a magician
could become addicted to the drug.
But not straightaway, surely. Plenty of magicians and novices had
tried roet and not become addicts. Perhaps only some people were
susceptible to addiction. Or perhaps it had an accumulative e ect –
they had to take it several times before permanent damage was
done.
Either way, it could have both tragic and dangerous consequences.
Magicians addicted to roet might be bribed and controlled by their
suppliers. And the suppliers are most likely criminals, or linked to the
underworld.
Suddenly she remembered Regin’s assertion that novices and
magicians of the highest classes were associating with criminals
more often nowadays. She had believed the situation was no worse
than it had always been. But was he right? And was roet the reason?
A chill ran down her spine.
As another knock came from the door, she took a deep breath and
put the thought aside. For now her concern was the sick of the
lower classes. The Guild would have to deal with the consequences
of the Houses’ more foolish members.
But it wouldn’t hurt to see if any of the other Healers – and even the
hospice helpers – had heard of magicians becoming addicted to roet, or
being drawn into the world of criminals. And it might be useful to have
them ask a few questions of their patients, too. There’s nothing bored
patients and their families like doing more, to pass the time, than
gossiping.
Lorkin had no idea what time it was when the visitors nally left
and he and Dannyl were free to retire for the night. Once the last
guest had gone, they looked at each other and grimaced in relief.
“They’re friendlier than I expected,” Dannyl said.
Lorkin nodded in agreement. “I could sleep for a week.”
“From the sounds of it we’ll be lucky to have a day to recover
from the journey. Best get some sleep while we can.” Dannyl turned
to a slave – a young female who promptly threw herself face down
on the oor. “Take Lord Lorkin to his rooms.”
She leapt up again, glanced at Lorkin once, then gestured to a
doorway.
As Lorkin followed her through into a corridor, he felt his mood
sink a little. Every time they do that it feels so wrong. But is that only
because I know they’re slaves? People bow to me because I’m a
magician, and I don’t mind it. What’s the di erence?
The people who bowed to him had a choice. They did so because
it was considered good manners. Nobody was going to have them
whipped or executed or whatever the Sachakans did to disobedient
slaves.
The corridor curved to the left, following the odd circular shape of
the Master’s Room. Now it split into two and the slave took the
right-hand divergence. I wonder why they don’t make their walls
straight. Is it easier to construct them this way? Or harder? I bet it leads
to some odd little nooks here and there. He reached out to touch the
smoothly rendered wall. It was strangely appealing. No harsh edges.
The slave abruptly turned through a doorway. Lorkin followed and
stopped in the middle of another oddly shaped room.
It was almost but not quite circular. It was lit by small lamps
placed on stands around the room. The walls were decorated with
hangings or carvings set within alcoves. Between each was a
doorway. The centre of the room was furnished with stools and
large cushions. His travel chest lay on the oor beside one of the
doorways. The room beyond was also lit by lamps, revealing a bed
which looked, to his relief, no di erent to an ordinary Kyralian bed.
The slave had stopped beside a wall and remained standing, head
bowed and eyes downcast. Is she going to stay there, or leave? Perhaps
she’ll go away once I indicate I’m happy with the rooms.
“Thank you,” he said. “This will be ne.”
She did nothing, said nothing. Her expression – the little he could
see of it – did not change.
What will she do if I go into the bedroom? He walked past her
through the doorway and looked at the bed. Yes, it de nitely looks
like a normal bed. Turning, he saw that she was now standing against
the wall inside the bedroom, in the same pose. I didn’t even hear her
follow me.
He could probably tell her to go away, but as he opened his mouth
to speak he hesitated. I should take the opportunity to nd out how the
master–slave situation works. Is she my personal servant, or do a range
of servants have di erent tasks?
“So,” he said. “What is your name?”
“Tyvara,” she replied. Her voice was unexpectedly deep and
melodic.
“And what is your role here, Tyvara?”
She paused, then looked up and smiled. That’s better, he thought.
But looking into her eyes, he saw that they did not match the smile.
They gave nothing away. They were so dark he could barely tell
where the pupils began and the colour ended. It sent a sensation
down his spine that was not quite a chill of disquiet, nor was it
entirely a thrill of excitement either.
Pushing away from the wall, she walked toward him. Her eyes
dropped to his chest. She reached out and took hold of the sash of
his robe and began to untie it.
“Wha-what are you doing?” he said, taking hold of her wrists to
stop her.
“One of my duties,” she said, frowning and letting go of the sash.
His heart was racing. His body had decided to favour the side of
excitement over disquiet. I can’t jump to conclusions here, he told
himself. Besides, it’s disturbing enough having someone serve me without
any choice; I suspect bedding someone who has no choice would be even
more o -putting. He imagined looking into those dark, empty eyes
and all interest ed.
“We Kyralians prefer to undress ourselves,” he told her, letting her
hands go.
She nodded and stepped back, her mysterious eyes expressing
confusion and acceptance. Better that than nothing. Retreating to the
wall, she resumed her former position. He suppressed a sigh.
“You may go,” he told her.
She paused for the slightest moment, her eyebrows twitching
upward, then she moved rapidly, turning away from the wall and
disappearing through the doorway. Her footsteps were silent.
Lorkin moved to the bed and sat down.
Well, that was awkward and uncomfortable. And a little odd. She
hadn’t answered his question. But then, perhaps asking a female
slave what her role was when standing in a bedroom was a big
obvious hint that you wanted her to come to bed.
I’m an idiot. Of course it is. He sighed. I have much to learn, he
thought ruefully. And with Dannyl the only other free person here, the
only option is to learn from the slaves. If Tyvara is my personal servant
then I will see her the most of all the slaves. And if I’m going to question
a slave I had better do it privately, where no Sachakan can overhear me
revealing how ignorant I am.
Next time he had the opportunity, he decided, he was going to
question her on master–slave etiquette.
And hopefully we can set a few rules between us. Lessen the whole
obeisance thing to the point where it’s not so disturbing for me, without
going so far that it’s uncomfortable for her.
Simply put, he was going to have to befriend her. And that should
not be too hard. He’d never found it di cult to form friendships
with women. It was romantic entanglements that caused him more
trouble than they were worth. Working out how to befriend a
Sachakan slave woman might be a new challenge, but surely one
well within his abilities.
CHAPTER 11
TANTALISING INFORMATION
Dannyl surrendered his plate to the slave and resisted the urge to
pat his stomach contentedly. He was beginning to like the strange
manner in which meals were served in Sachaka. By having guests
select food from the o ered plates it allowed them to eat as much or
as little as they liked. At rst he had felt obliged to try every dish,
but he noticed that other guests did not – if anything they a ected
an air of fussiness which the host did not appear to mind.
Nobody ever commented on the food, he’d noted. Which was a
relief, because some of the dishes had been laced with spices so hot,
or else unexpectedly bitter or salty, that he’d not been able to nish
what he’d taken. Sachakans did not appear to serve dessert, though
if receiving a visitor during the day they made sure there were
dishes of nuts, sweet fruit or confections laid out on tables.
Dannyl’s host for the night was a portly Sachakan named Ashaki
Itoki. He knew that the man was one of the most powerful in
Sachaka, and cousin to the Sachakan king. It appeared Ashaki
Achati, the man who had greeted Dannyl and Lorkin when they had
arrived at the Guild House, had been given the task of ensuring
Dannyl was introduced to the right people in the right order.
Though he had not told Dannyl this plainly, he had hinted at it.
“What shall we do now?” Itoki asked, glancing from Dannyl to
Achati. “My baths are large enough to accommodate guests and my
slaves are well trained in the art of massage.”
“Ambassador Dannyl might be interested in seeing those ancient
maps you collect,” Achati suggested.
Dannyl felt a ash of hope. He had always found old maps
intriguing, and it was always possible they might contain
information relevant to his research.
“I would not like to bore my guest,” Itoki said doubtfully.
“Remember, I told you earlier that Ambassador Dannyl is a
historian. I’m sure he will nd them very interesting.”
Itoki looked at Dannyl hopefully. Dannyl nodded in agreement. “I
would.”
The man smiled broadly, then rubbed his hands together. “Oh,
you’ll be impressed, I’m sure. Most advanced maps ever drawn.” He
rose, and Achati and Dannyl followed suit. “I’ll take you to the
library.”
They made their way through curved white corridors to a cluster
of rooms similar to those Dannyl had been given at the Guild House,
and those he and Lorkin had used while staying with Ashaki hosts
on their journey to Arvice. It was interesting to see that another
Sachakan house followed the same pattern. Were they all the same?
How long had Sachakans been building their homes in this way?
The central room held a few stools and a large pile of cushions in
the centre, and several cabinets stood against the walls. Through the
doorways leading out on all sides Dannyl could see several more.
Itoki moved to a cabinet and drew a key out of an inner pocket of
his jacket. He unlocked it and pulled open the doors.
Several metal tubes stood on end within. Itoki ran his ngers
along them reverently, then chose one and drew it out. He moved to
the cushions, nudged several aside to clear an area of oor, then
lowered himself onto a stool with a grunt of e ort.
“If you position yourselves there and there,” he said, pointing, “we
can hold a corner each and weigh the other down.” Achati moved a
stool into one of the indicated positions, and Dannyl shifted another
to the second. They sat down and watched Itoki remove the cap of
the tube and pull out a roll of yellowed paper.
“This isn’t the original, of course,” the man said. “It’s a copy, but
it’s still over four hundred years old and a bit delicate.” He laid the
roll on the oor and began to unroll it. Dannyl automatically caught
the edge closest to him, preventing it from springing back. Achati
did the same. At a glance from Itoki a stool rose and oated over to
weigh down the last corner with one of its legs.
A great swirling mass of lines was revealed. Blue rivers wound
across them, and beside several of them roads matched and re ected
every curve. Tiny drawings of buildings, elds and the low walls of
estate boundaries covered the map. Contour lines on a four-hundred-
year-old map? The Guild didn’t develop the use of contour lines until two
hundred years ago. But … this is a copy.
“How old was the original map?” he asked.
“Over seven hundred years,” Itoki replied, with a note of pride.
“They’ve been passed down through my family since the Sachakan
War.”
“Do you have the originals?”
“Yes,” Itoki grinned. “But they are in fragments, and are too
delicate to handle.”
Dannyl looked down at the map again. “What is this map of?”
“A region in western Sachaka, near the mountains. Let me show
you the others.” Itoki rose again and collected another two metal
tubes from the cabinet. The map he unrolled next was of a coastal
area, with tiny boats drawn in the water parts and warnings written
next to rocks and reefs. It was followed by one of another rural area.
“This is – was – in the south,” Itoki told him.
Where the wasteland lies, Dannyl thought. He doesn’t state it. He
doesn’t have to. The elds and estates hinted at a fertile, green land
where sand and dust now dominated.
They examined the maps for some time until, at a signal from
Achati, Itoki began rolling them up carefully and sliding them back
into their tubes.
“What areas of history are you interested in?” he asked Dannyl.
Dannyl shrugged. “Most of them. Though I suppose the older the
better, and naturally any reference to magic is interesting to me.”
“Naturally. That would include Guild history, or is that already
well recorded?”
“Yes and no. There are some gaps in Guild history that I am trying
to ll.”
“I doubt I could help you there, though I do have some records
from the short time that Kyralia ruled Sachaka.” Itoki rose and
returned to the cabinet to replace the map tubes, locked the cabinet,
then beckoned and moved into one of the side rooms. Dannyl and
Achati followed. The tall, heavy cabinets around the room stood like
guards on duty, still and silent. Itoki moved to one and opened the
doors. Which aren’t locked, Dannyl noted. What’s in them obviously
isn’t as valuable.
The familiar smell of old paper and binding wafted out. Inside
were several books with missing or tattered covers, frayed rolls of
paper and envelopes of leather wrapped around stacks of paper.
Itoki ri ed through gently, then took out a stack of papers and a
book.
“These are letters and records of a Guild magician who lived in
Sachaka during the years of occupation. I rescued them from an old
estate at the edge of the wasteland that fell into the king’s hands
after no legitimate heir came forward to claim it.”
He handed the book to Dannyl. Opening it, Dannyl leafed carefully
through the rst few brittle old pages. Like many of the old records
of Kyralian magicians, they contained both accounting lists and
diary entries. Conscious of the two men watching him, he started to
skim the contents.
“… o er to purchase our House. I refused it, naturally. The building
has belonged to my family for over two centuries. Though the price was
tempting. I explained that if we do not own a House in Imardin we will
lose the right to call ourselves Lord and Lady. He said land ownership is
as important to power and in uence here in Sachaka as well.”
Dannyl frowned. This was written after the war, yet here is a
reference to a building that is at least two hundred years old and still
standing. It is proof that Imardin wasn’t levelled during the war, as our
history books claim. His heart skipped. He looked up at the two
Sachakans. Clearly he was not going to be able to read the whole
book, and make notes, while they waited.
“Do you mind if I copy this passage out?” he asked.
Itoki shook his head. “Not at all. You found something
noteworthy?”
“Yes,” Dannyl drew out the notebook and a wrapped stick of
compressed charcoal he always carried in his robes. “It con rms
something I’ve suspected.”
“That is?” Achati asked.
Dannyl paused to write down the record entry, then looked up.
“That Imardin wasn’t destroyed in the Sachakan War.”
Itoki’s eyebrows rose. “I’ve never heard such a thing. According to
our histories the nal battle happened before the gates, and our
armies were defeated.”
Dannyl paused. “Armies? There were more than one?”
“Yes. They came together for the nal confrontation. You’d have
to ask Master Kirota for the full story, but I can show you some
maps drawn after the war that show the three paths of the armies.
They are not that old, or relating to magic, though.”
“No, but it sounds like they’d be very interesting.”
As the man took the book from Dannyl and placed it and the stack
of letters back in the cabinet, Dannyl felt a pang of disappointment.
In a few short moments’ access to this man’s library he’d con rmed
something that had nagged at him for years. How much more could
he learn?
But it was late and he could not impose on his host too much. And
no doubt Ashaki Achati would like to return home soon. Perhaps I
can return some time. Then he felt his heart sink. But not for a while,
because I have to visit all the other powerful Sachakans wanting to meet
the new Guild Ambassador to Sachaka rst, or I might show too much
favour for one over the rest. Curse the politics of this place!
He would do his best to arrange another visit. In the meantime he
must take advantage of any opportunities that came his way. As
Ashaki Itoki led the way out of the room to show him the battle
maps, Dannyl swallowed his impatience and followed.
Gol had done his research well. The shop was the kind that bought
and sold the belongings of debtors and the desperate. It was also
located in a part of the city where Cery was unlikely to be
recognised. In one corner, paper window screens of all sizes and
shapes leaned against the wall. Coats and cloaks hung on racks and
shoes sat in pairs below them. All manner of pottery, glass, metal
and stone domestic vessels and objects crowded shelves behind the
owner’s chair and side bench. And a heavy, decorative ironwork
cage protected trays of jewellery – though from the look of it most
was badly made or fake.
Another set of shelves held books of all sizes. Some were bound
with paper, the threads of the binding exposed and fraying. Some
were bound in leather and, of those, most were worn and cracked,
but a few gleamed with newness.
“Books on magic, then?” the pawnshop owner said, his voice rising
in volume but dropping in tone. He chuckled. “I get a few from time
to time. Oh, you won’t nd any there, young man.”
Cery turned to nd the man looking at him. The man’s smile
faltered for a moment as he realised his error.
“The Guild takes them o you?” Cery asked.
The man shook his head. “No, the Guard come by now and then to
check but I’m not fool enough to put something like that on display.
And the books go too quickly. In and out. My regular customers
know they have to come quick when I let them know something’s
arrived, if they want to be the one that gets it.”
“How do you get hold of them – if you don’t mind me asking?”
The man shrugged. “Mostly I get ’em from novices. The ones that
come from around here. For some reason they can’t send money
direct to their families, so they steal books and sell them to me, and
I pass on the money.”
“For a fee,” Cery nished.
The man shook his head. “Oh, I make a good enough pro t on
selling them. I treat my novices good, ’cause there’s plenty of others
they could go to if I didn’t.” He scowled. “Of course, some of ’em try
to get me to pass the money on to rot sellers instead. I won’t have
any of that. Nasty people, those. Don’t want anything to do with
them.”
“Me neither,” Cery replied. “How do you know if a book is real or
a fake?”
The man straightened. “Many years’ experience. And a couple
spent working in the Guild when I was a young man.”
“Really? You worked for the Guild?” Cery leaned toward the man.
“What you get kicked out for?”
The man crossed his arms. “Did I say I got kicked out?”
Cery gave the man a hard look. “You left a job like that?”
The seller hesitated, then shrugged. “Didn’t like being told what to
do all the time. As my late wife said, it doesn’t suit everyone.
‘Makkin the Buyer’ is a name that suits me best. Better to be Makkin
my fortune than Makkin anyone’s dinner or beds.” He chuckled.
“Fair enough,” Cery said. “I don’t think I could put up with it
either. So … when do you think you might get some new books?
And what sort can I get?”
Makkin’s eyes gleamed with pleasure. “They arrive when they
arrive. Sometimes you wait days, sometimes weeks. I can try to get
my novices to steal what you want, but it’s not always possible – or
else it takes longer. Price depends on di culty, and I have to warn
you, sometimes one of my more, erm, in uential customers takes an
interest and buys out everything I have, no matter who ordered it.”
The man rubbed his hands together. “What were you after in
particular?”
“Something … unusual. Rare. On a particular subject. I don’t care
what, just not beginner’s books.”
The man nodded. “I’ll see what I can do. Call back in a few days
and I’ll tell you what my boys have or can get.” He beamed at Cery.
“Always nice to have a new customer.”
Cery nodded. “Always.” He tilted his head to one side a little. “I
don’t suppose you can tell us who your other customers are. Just so
I know who I’m up against.”
Makkin shook his head. “Wouldn’t be in business long if I did
that.”
“No, I suppose not.” Cery turned toward the door, then looked
thoughtful and turned back. “Just curious, but how much would a
man have to o er you to be worth risking it?”
“I like being alive too much to even think about it.”
Cery raised his eyebrows. “You must have very in uential
customers.”
The man smiled. “I look forward to doing business with you.”
Holding back a laugh, Cery turned away. Gol strode forward to
open the door for him, and they both stepped out into the street.
It was nearing sunset, and the people still out and about were
walking with a hunched and intent stride, no doubt looking forward
to getting to their destination. A few steps past the shop, Cery
crossed the road and moved into the shadow of the opposite
buildings. Then he stopped and looked back.
“What are you thinking?” Gol asked. “You have that look.”
“I’m thinking that Makkin and his shop might be a good location
for our trap.”
“So do we arrange for something special to fall into his hands and
see who comes to get it, or do we wait until something real comes
in?”
“I doubt he’d tell us rst, if he got real books. We need to be in
control of the transaction as much as possible, and by arranging for
the fakes to reach him we can time it to our plans. Though … we
have to give our quarry reason to use magic to get hold of it. I
wonder … he said he keeps them out of sight. A safebox, perhaps?”
“I’ll nd out. It would make it easier to be sure Makkin doesn’t sell
the books to anyone else. Hopefully that’ll force the Hunter to break
in to get it.”
“And use magic.” Cery nodded. “We’ll need a safe place to watch
from. And make sure we can get away if things go wrong or Makkin
works out what’s going on.”
Gol nodded. “I’ll look into it.”
It was late when Dannyl nally walked through the door to his
rooms at the Guild House. He’d spent the evening visiting an old
Ashaki who insisted on lling Dannyl in on the trading exploits of
all his ancestors, and was overly gleeful at their success at cheating
other traders to the point of ruin.
He glanced into the side room he and past Ambassadors used as an
o ce and, seeing something new on the desk, stopped and looked
closer. A notebook lay there. He walked into the room and picked it
up. Opening the pages, he recognised Lorkin’s handwriting and
suddenly the weariness he’d felt these last few hours lifted.
At some point a previous Ambassador had purchased or had made
for the o ce an ordinary chair with a back. Dannyl sat down with
an appreciative sigh and began to read. The rst passages Lorkin
had copied out were from the record that Dannyl had skimmed
through. There weren’t many entries, he noted, and he felt a pang of
worry as he realised the young man hadn’t copied out the entry
about the house in Imardin. Dannyl hadn’t mentioned it, curious to
see if Lorkin would notice.
But it wasn’t an obvious clue. Lorkin will, no doubt, see di erent
things. While he won’t pick up everything I would have, he may nd
things I wouldn’t.
Sending Lorkin in Dannyl’s place had been a brilliant solution to
the problem of being unable to visit important Sachakans twice in a
row for fear of showing undue political favour. Nothing would be
the same as doing the research personally, but having Lorkin do it
for him at least gave him some material to examine and consider
until he was free to do it himself.
Reading on, he felt his excitement at having new information
slowly ebb. There was little more here of use. Then Lorkin’s
handwriting suddenly became bolder and angular, with one word
repeatedly underlined. Dannyl read and then reread the copied-out
record, and Lorkin’s speculations, and felt his mood lift again.
Lorkin is right. This “storestone” is clearly important. Though he is
assuming it is a magical object. It might be something with political value
– an object that states the possessor is important, like a king’s band or a
religious leader’s treasure.
The name “Narvelan” was familiar, but he could not remember
why. He rubbed his forehead and realised he had a growing
headache and was thirsty. The meal had been excessively salty, and
the only drink o ered had been wine. Looking through the doorway
into the main room, he saw that there was a slave standing against
the far wall.
“Fetch me some water, will you?” he called.
The young man hurried away. Dannyl turned back to Lorkin’s
notes, rereading and trying to remember where he’d heard the name
“Narvelan” before. Hearing the slave return, he looked up. Instead
of the previous young man, a boy stood there, holding out a jug and
a glass.
Dannyl hesitated, then took them, wondering why he was now
being served by a di erent slave. The boy looked down, avoiding
his eyes. Not for the rst time, he wondered who decided which
slaves did what. Probably the slave master, who had introduced
himself on the rst day. Lord Maron had explained that the slaves
actually belonged to the king, but were “on loan” to the Guild
House. This prevented the Guild from breaking the law against
Kyralians enslaving others while in Sachaka – a rule that was
designed to prevent Kyralians getting to like the idea and trying to
introduce it in their homeland.
The boy bit his lip then took a step toward Dannyl.
“Does my master wish for company in bed tonight?” he asked.
Dannyl felt his insides freeze, then a wave of horror rushed over
him.
“No,” he said quickly and rmly. Then he added: “You may leave,
now.”
The boy left, showing neither relief nor disappointment in his walk
or posture. Dannyl shuddered. Just when I’m getting used to seeing
slaves everywhere … But perhaps it was better not to grow too
comfortable. Perhaps it was good to be reminded of how barbaric
the Sachakan people could be.
But why a boy? None of the female slaves have been so forward. It
was likely the Sachakan king’s spies would have looked into his
background and picked up on his scandalous but not-so-secret
preference for men in his bed instead of women. But that does not
mean I’d take a mere child to bed. Or a slave, who had no choice in the
matter. The latter thought repelled him, but the former lled him
with disgust.
Has Lorkin received a similar o er? The question lled him with
anxiety for a moment, but then he remembered the expression
Lorkin always wore whenever a slave prostrated themselves in front
of him. If he had, I don’t think he’d have taken it up. Still, I need to keep
an eye on him.
But not tonight. It was late and Lorkin was probably long asleep.
Dannyl ought to retire, too. There would be another Ashaki to visit
and listen to tomorrow night, and the night after, and the list of
matters of trade and diplomacy to sort out during daylight hours
was starting to grow as well.
Yet when he did nally settle in his bed, he dreamed he was
arguing with Tayend – who had somehow become a Sachakan
Ashaki – about the stunningly handsome male slaves he owned. Do
as the locals do, Tayend told him. We’d expect the same from them if
they came to Kyralia. And remember, I’m not the rst Guild magician to
own slaves. Remember that, in the morning.
CHAPTER 13
THE TRAP
After Dannyl had left for the evening, and the slaves had served
dinner, Lorkin had returned to his rooms. There wasn’t a lot of work
for him to do as Dannyl’s assistant yet. Apart from the one visit to
Ashaki Itoki’s home, he hadn’t left the Guild House. Only a small
part of the work that Dannyl tackled during the day could be
handed on to Lorkin.
He spent the evenings reading or questioning the slaves. The latter
was proving harder than he expected. While the slaves always
responded to his questions, they o ered no more than the most
basic answer. If he asked them if there was anything else he needed
to know they looked confused and anxious.
But it’s probably impossible for them to know what I need to know, he
thought. And they’re reluctant to guess in case they get it wrong and it
angers me. Initiative is probably a trait discouraged in a slave.
He had a feeling that the dark-eyed girl who had rst taken him to
his room – Tyvara – might be more receptive, though he wasn’t sure
why. She hadn’t served him since that rst night, however. Tonight
he had nothing pressing to do, so he’d asked the slave serving him
to bring her to him.
They probably all think I want to bed her, he mused, remembering
her misunderstanding the rst night. Tyvara probably will, too. I’ll
have to reassure her that isn’t my intention. Is there any way I can
encourage her to talk freely?
He looked around and his eyes settled on the cupboard containing
wine and glasses for his own use or entertaining guests. Before he
could cross the room to collect them, he saw a movement in the
doorway. Tyvara stepped into the room and approached him,
stopping several steps away to prostrate herself.
“Rise, Tyvara,” he told her. She stood, and her gaze remained on
the oor. Her face was expressionless, and he was not sure if it was
his imagination that made her seem a little tense. “Fetch me two
glasses and some wine,” he ordered.
She obeyed, her movements quick but graceful. He sat down on
one of the stools in the centre of the room and waited for her. She
placed the glasses and a bottle on the oor, then knelt beside them.
“Open it,” he instructed. “And ll both of them. One is for you.”
Her hands had begun to reach toward the bottle, but now
hesitated. Then they continued in the tasks required of them. When
both glasses were full she lifted one and handed it to him. He took it
and gestured to the other.
“Drink. I have some questions for you. Only questions,” he added.
“Hopefully nothing that will compromise you in any way. If I ask
anything that will get you in trouble by answering, tell me that
instead.”
She looked at the glass, then picked it up with obvious reluctance.
He sipped. She followed suit, and the muscles around her mouth
twitched into a faint grimace.
“You don’t like wine?” he asked.
She shook her head.
“Oh.” He cast about. “Then don’t drink it. Put it aside.”
There was a de nite air of dislike to the way she set it down as far
away from herself as she could stretch. He took another mouthful
from his own glass, considering what to ask next.
“Is … is there any way I should be behaving toward the slaves
here that I am … I am neglecting … or getting wrong?”
She shook her head quickly. Too quickly. He reconsidered the
question.
“Is there any way I could improve my interaction with the slaves
here? Make things more e cient? Easier?”
Again, she shook her head, but not as quickly.
“Am I making a total fool of myself when interacting with slaves?”
The slightest hint of a smile touched her lips, then she shook her
head once more.
“You hesitated then,” he pointed out, leaning toward her. “There’s
something, isn’t there? I’m not making a fool of myself, but instead
I’m doing something unnecessary or silly, aren’t I?”
She paused, then shrugged.
“What is it?”
“You don’t need to thank us,” she said.
Her melodic, husky voice was a revelation after all the silent
gestures. He felt a shiver run down his spine. If she wasn’t a slave, I
think I’d nd her immensely fascinating. And if she wasn’t dressed in
that awful wrap dress, probably quite attractive as well.
But he hadn’t called her here to romance her.
“Ah,” he said. “That’s a habit – what we consider good manners in
Kyralia. But if it makes things easier, I’ll try not to do it.”
She nodded.
What next? “Other than thanking slaves unnecessarily, is there
anything I or Dannyl have been doing in our interaction with slaves
that would make us look foolish to free Sachakans?”
She frowned, and her mouth opened, but then she seemed to
freeze. He saw her eyes roaming about the oor, focusing as close to
him as his feet, then ickering away. She is afraid of how I’ll respond
to her answer.
“The truth will not anger me, Tyvara,” he said gently. “Instead it
may be a great help to us.”
She swallowed, then bowed her head even further.
“You will lose status if you do not take a slave to bed.”
He felt a ash of shock, then of amusement. Questions ooded his
mind. Did he and Dannyl care about losing status for such a reason?
Should they? But then, how damaging was their inaction? Had
previous Guild Ambassadors and assistants bedded the slaves here?
But, more importantly, how would free Sachakans know if the new
Guild Ambassador and his assistant bedded their slaves or not?
Clearly such information isn’t kept a secret. The slaves here are, after
all, the Sachakan king’s possessions. It would be stupid to think our
prowess in the bedroom wasn’t discussed and judged.
And then he smiled, thinking of all those powerful Sachakan
Ashaki gossiping like old women.
He should nd out what the consequences were, while he had
Tyvara talking.
“How much status will we lose?” he asked.
She shook her head. “I cannot say. I only know they will not
respect you as much.”
Does that mean none of the previous Guild House occupants found this
out, because none of them refused the opportunity? He looked at
Tyvara. If only she would look at me. And look at me without hesitation
or subservience. To see her stand straight and tall with con dence and
fearlessness, or for those dark eyes to express true, willing desire, I would
take her to bed without hesitation. But this … I couldn’t do it. Not even
to help Dannyl gain respect in the Ashaki’s eyes.
And it was unlikely Dannyl was taking any of the female slaves to
bed either.
“I don’t care about status,” he told Tyvara. “A man should be
judged by his integrity, not by how many women he takes to bed –
slave or free, willing or otherwise.”
She glanced up at him for the briefest moment, an intense look in
her eyes, but quickly dropped her head again. He saw her teeth
ash as they pressed against her lower lip, then she grimaced.
“What is it?” he asked. She is afraid. How does this a ect her? Of
course! She will be punished if it is thought she didn’t please me. “What
will they do to you?”
“They will … they will send someone else. And another.” And they
will all be punished, her words seemed to hint.
He bit back a curse. “If they do, I will ask for you. If you want me
to, of course,” he added. “We will talk. Tell each other about
ourselves and our countries, or something. I don’t see how I’m going
to learn about Sachaka otherwise, shut up in the Guild House – and
I’d really like to know more about your people. And yourself. How
does that sound? Will it work?”
She paused, then nodded. Relieved, he took in a deep breath and
let it out again. “So tell me something about yourself, then. Where
were you born?”
Even as she began to describe the breeding house where she had
been raised, he felt the horror of her story eased by something
inexplicable. She was talking to him. Finally a Sachakan was actually
communicating with him beyond orders and answers. It had never
occurred to him that he might be lonely in Sachaka. Listening to
her, he realised she suddenly seemed much more human –
something he might come to regret later. But for now he relaxed
and listened to the beautiful, hypnotic voice of this slave woman,
and savoured every word.
The roof of the pawnshop was surprisingly well constructed. Cery
and Gol had crawled out on it a few hours ago, when the full
darkness of night had set in. They’d separated the tiles they’d sent a
street urchin up to loosen for them earlier that day, and now were
looking through cracks between them down at the room where
Makkin the Buyer kept his safebox.
Inside that safebox were Makkin’s most valuable books, including
a new volume about Healing magic. After visiting the shop,
pretending to view the book for the rst time and making sure
Makkin didn’t sell it before Cery could return with the money for it,
Cery had visited a few of the drinking establishments they
patronised to boast about the special volume he’d be buying just as
soon as someone paid their debt to him – which would probably be
tomorrow.
It could be a long night, Cery thought, carefully stretching the
sti ness out of one leg. But if all goes to plan we won’t have to lie out
here in the night air for more than one. We just have to hope the Thief
Hunter is a magician … and has the hunger for knowledge we assume he
has … and has heard about my boasting today … and hasn’t got
something more important to do tonight.
Cery had to admit he was acting on only rumour and guesses. He
could easily be wrong about a great number of things. The magician
that had opened the locks in Cery’s hideout might not be the Thief
Hunter. He might have been in the employ of the Thief Hunter, or
someone else. He might not be a customer of Makkin’s.
But this is not so wild an idea that it’s not worth trying. And it’s the
only lead we have.
Shifting his weight, he stretched the other leg. At times like this he
was all too aware that he was getting older. He could not climb up
the sides of buildings using only a few handholds or a rope, or leap
the gaps between them so fearlessly. His muscles sti ened up
quickly in the cold air, and took longer to recover from exertion.
And I don’t have a beautiful Sachakan woman nearby to catch me with
her magic if the roof collapses.
Old, pleasant memories ashed through his mind. Savara.
Mysterious. Seductive. Dangerous. A skilled ghter. The practice
bouts he’d had with her had been challenging and exciting, and he’d
picked up more than a few new tricks. She’d known too much about
the deal he’d made with High Lord Akkarin to kill o the freed
Sachakan slaves that the Ichani had sent to Imardin as spies, and to
expose the Guild’s weaknesses. But he’d also sensed that he’d not
easily get rid of her. That it was better to keep her occupied
thinking she was helping him, without letting her get too close to
the truth.
She’d worked that one out pretty fast. And then there was that night
when they’d watched Sonea and Akkarin ght and kill an Ichani
woman. The battle had caused the roof to collapse under them, but
Savara had stopped him falling with magic. And then things had
become much more personal …
After the Ichani Invasion she’d left, returning to the people she
worked for. He’d never seen her again, though he’d often wondered
where she was and if she was alive and safe. She would most likely
have ventured into dangerous situations again and again for the
sake of her people, so it was easily possible one had led to her
death.
I was never in love with her, he reminded himself. Nor was she in
love with me. I admired her, for both her body and mind. She found me
a useful and entertaining ally and distraction. If she’d stayed we
wouldn’t have …
A sound below drew his attention back to the present. Peering
through the crack between the roof tiles again, Cery saw two people
climb the stairs into the small room below. One he recognised
instantly: Makkin, carrying a lamp. The other was a dark-skinned
woman.
“Is that it?” she asked. Her voice was strangely accented and had
the hoarseness of age, but she moved with the vitality of a younger
person. The Thief Hunter is a woman? Cery thought. That’s …
interesting. It seems I’m doomed to know or be the target of very
powerful and dangerous women.
“Yes,” Makkin replied. “That’s it. They’re in there. But—”
“Open it!” the woman ordered.
“I can’t! They took the key. Said that way I couldn’t sell it to
anyone else before they came back with the money.”
“What? You’re lying!”
“No! Nonononono!” The pawnshop owner threw up his arms and
cringed away from her. His behaviour was a little extreme for
someone a head taller than the woman stalking toward him. As if he
knows she is more dangerous than she looks.
The woman waved her arms. “Get out,” she ordered. “Leave the
lamp, get out of this shop and don’t come back until tomorrow.”
“Yes! Thank you! I’m sorry I couldn’t—”
“OUT!”
He tore back down the stairs as if a wild beast were in pursuit. The
woman waited, listening to Makkin’s footsteps. The sound of the
shop door slamming echoed up to Cery’s ears.
The woman turned to look at the safebox, then her shoulders
straightened. She approached it slowly, then squatted before it and
went still. Cery could not see her face, but he saw her shoulders rise
and fall as she breathed deeply.
A moment later the lock clicked open.
Gol let out a quiet gasp. Cery smiled grimly. Locks don’t just open of
their own will. She must have used magic. I have the proof I need that we
have a rogue in the city. It wasn’t proof that she was the Thief
Hunter, though, but what if she was? He felt a chill run up his spine
at the thought. Was the woman below really the murderer who had
killed so many Thieves?
She was examining the books within the safebox now. He
recognised the one on magic. Opening it, the woman icked
through the pages, then muttered something and tossed it aside.
Picking up another book, she examined it as well. When she had
looked at all of the tomes she slowly stood up. Her sts clenched
and she uttered a strange word.
What did she say? He frowned. Wait a moment. That was a di erent
language. She’s foreign. But she hadn’t said enough for him to
recognise the language or even her accent. If only she would speak
again. A whole sentence, not only a curse word.
But the woman remained silent. She rose and turned her back on
the safebox and its contents, now strewn about the room. Walking
away, she reached the stairs and disappeared into the darkness of
the shop below. The door slammed again. Faint footsteps faded in
the street beyond.
Cery remained still and silent, waiting until they were sure that if
anyone had heard the woman shouting they would have lost interest
and stopped watching the shop. He considered his plan. We have the
information we need. The only surprise is that the magician is a woman
and a foreigner. That doesn’t make her any less dangerous, whether she
is the Thief Hunter or not. And if foreign magicians are taking up
residence in Imardin, Sonea will de nitely want to know about it.
And Skellin. Should he tell the other Thief?
I don’t have proof that she is the Thief Hunter. I only have proof that
she is the Rogue. I’d rather Skellin didn’t know that Sonea and I still
communicate. If the Guild captures this woman they’ll read her mind and
nd out once and for all if she is the killer. If she isn’t, then there’s
nothing to tell Skellin.
And if she was … well, once the Guild found and dealt with the
Rogue there’d be no Thief Hunter to worry about any more.
CHAPTER 14
UNEXPECTED ALLIES
From her seat high at the front of the Guildhall, Sonea watched the
room lling up with magicians. A few patches of purple, red and
green had formed, which was a recent phenomenon. Magicians from
the Houses tended to sit with family members and allies rather than
those of their own discipline, and that led to a mix of robe colours.
But magicians from outside the Houses tended to form friendships
with those of the same discipline, and the collective e ect was a
patch of the same robe colour in the audience.
As the last stragglers took their seats, she drew in a deep breath
and let it out slowly. How will they vote today? Will they act out of
fear that “lowies” may rebel against the Guild if rules are too restrictive?
Will they act out of fear of criminal groups gaining too much in uence
on magicians and novices? Or will they want to abolish the rule so that
they can indulge in pleasure houses and other entertainments run by
Thieves without restriction? Or in order to continue to bene t from their
own illegal enterprises with less danger of discovery?
A gong rang out. Sonea looked down to see Osen striding across
the front of the hall. The buzz of voices immediately began to
diminish, and when all had quietened the Administrator’s voice rang
out.
“Today we have gathered to decide whether or not to grant the
request, made by Lord Pendel and others, that we abolish the rule
that states: ‘No magician or novice may associate with criminals and
people of unsavoury character.’ I have decided that this is a decision
that should be made by all magicians, by vote. I now request that
the side for abolition of the rule sum up their position and
reasoning, beginning with Lord Pendel.”
Lord Pendel had been standing at the side of the room, and now
stepped forward. He turned to face the majority of magicians and
began to speak.
Sonea listened closely. It had not been easy persuading him to
o er a compromise to the Guild, and even now she was not
completely sure if he would. He began by pointing out where the
rule had failed, or had been applied unfairly. Then he tackled the
reasoning of those opposed to the rule’s abolition. Then he began to
paint a picture of a more uni ed Guild in conclusion. Sonea
frowned. He is going to wind this up without even a suggestion that a
compromise may be possible.
“If there is to be a rule to prevent magicians and novices from
involving themselves with criminal enterprises – and I do think
there should be one – then it should be designed to achieve that.
What is clear from the cases I have described is that this is not a rule
suited for that purpose. It is ine ective and should be abolished.”
I suppose the message is in there, though it’s very subtle, Sonea
thought. Now let’s see if Regin keeps his side of our agreement.
As Lord Pendel bowed to the audience and stepped aside,
Administrator Osen returned to the front.
“I now call upon Lord Regin to speak for the opposition to the
abolition of the rule.”
Regin strode forward. If he was disappointed with Pendel’s e ort
at suggesting a compromise, he didn’t show it. He turned to face the
hall and began to speak.
Knowing what she did about the corruption among the higher-
class novices, Sonea could not help admiring how Regin managed to
avoid saying anything that would directly reveal who the culprits
and victims were. Yet he didn’t shy from claiming such corruption
existed, and Sonea heard no more than a few protests from the
watching audience of magicians.
I wish I could have given him proof of the permanent e ects of roet for
magicians. It might have helped us persuade everyone that the rule
should be changed, instead of abolished.
As Regin concluded his speech, Sonea felt her heart skip a beat. He
hadn’t suggested a compromise. But as he summed up, she realised
there was a hint of admission in his words that the rule was
ine ective as it stood. A subtle shift in position, but no stronger or
weaker than Pendel’s.
Had he anticipated that or did he change tack in response? Or did he
have di erent approaches planned in case of di erent eventualities? She
shook her head. I’m glad it’s not me down there, speaking in his place.
“I now call for ten minutes of discussion,” Osen said. The gong
rang out a second time and immediately the hall lled with voices.
Sonea turned to watch and listen to the Higher Magicians.
At rst none spoke. All seemed hesitant and indecisive. Then High
Lord Balkan sighed.
“There is merit in both arguments,” he stated. “Do any of you
favour one or the other?”
“I favour keeping the rule,” Lady Vinara said. “These are bad times
for relaxing control over magicians. The city is more corrupt than it
has ever been, and keeping ourselves immune is more complicated
now that we no longer all have similar strengths and weaknesses.”
Sonea resisted a smile. “Strengths and weaknesses.” A clever way of
pointing out we have di erent backgrounds without making one sound
better than the other.
“But it is clear the rule is unfair, and we do risk rebellion at the
worst, or the loss of much-needed talent at the best,” Lord Peakin
argued.
“It is only the application of the rule that is at fault,” Vinara
replied.
“I don’t think the lowies will accept a promise we’ll be fairer,”
Lord Erayk pointed out. “They need something stronger. A real
change.”
“Change sounds like the solution to me,” Lord Peakin said. “Or a
clari cation. What is an ‘unsavoury character’, after all?” His
eyebrows rose and he looked around. “I’d nd someone who smells
bad unsavoury. That’s hardly justi cation for punishing a
magician.”
There were a few chuckles.
“Black Magician Sonea.”
Sonea felt her heart sink as she recognised Kallen’s voice. She
looked past High Lord Balkan at the man.
“Yes, Black Magician Kallen?” she replied.
“You have been meeting with the representatives of both sides.
What have you concluded?”
The others were looking at her expectantly now. She paused to
consider how to answer.
“I am in favour of the rule being changed. Of removing the
reference to ‘unsavoury characters’, which not only eases the
restrictions and perceived prejudice against novices and magicians
from poorer backgrounds, it strengthens the emphasis on ‘criminals’
as those we don’t want Guild members associating with.”
To her consternation, none of the Higher Magicians looked
surprised. Not even Rothen. Clearly they expected me to take this
position. I hope that is because it is fairer, not because I grew up in the
old slums.
“Even with this change, the weakness of the rule is the ambiguity
in what a criminal is, or whether an activity is a crime,” Lord Erayk
said.
“The king might not appreciate you calling his laws ‘ambiguous’,”
Lord Peakin pointed out, chuckling. “His laws clearly state what is a
crime.”
“I agree that certain activities need to be de ned,” Lady Vinara
said. “As the laws stand, it is di cult for us to prevent criminals
taking advantage of magicians when those magicians are in their
pleasure houses – whether by luring them into debt through
gambling, addling their minds with drink, rewarding them with free
whores or poisoning them with roet. If I had my way, roet selling
would be a crime.”
“Why roet?” Lord Telano asked. “It is little di erent to drink, and
I’m sure none of us would like wine to be declared illegal.” He
glanced around, smiling and getting many nods in reply.
“Roet does far more harm,” Vinara told him.
“How so?”
She opened her mouth, then shook her head as a gong rang out.
“Come to the Healer’s Quarters – or Black Magician Sonea’s hospices
– and you will see the truth of it.”
Sonea’s heart skipped. Had Vinara investigated the e ects of roet
since Sonea told her of them? She looked at Vinara, but the
woman’s attention was on Telano. He had turned away, scowling. I
wonder why he is so bothered by Vinara’s position. And surely, as a
Healer, he’s seen the e ect of roet on its victims – even if he hasn’t
realised it could be permanent. I must have a closer look at our Head of
Healing Studies and talk to Lady Vinara again.
Administrator Osen announced the end of discussion time, and all
returned to their seats. “Does anybody have anything they wish to
say on this subject that has not been raised yet?” he asked.
A few magicians raised their hands. They were called to the oor.
The rst suggested that magicians should be subject to the same
laws as ordinary Kyralians and there be no Guild rules at all. His
proposal was met with a rumble of disagreement from all sides. The
second magician declared that the rule should be changed, but his
suggestion was that the rule should forbid magicians from
involvement in or bene ting from criminal activity. This roused a
thoughtful murmur. The last magician said only that the decision
should be the king’s.
“The king knows and has acknowledged that Guild rules, as
opposed to laws, are for the Guild to make,” Osen assured them all.
He turned to the front. “Do any of the Higher Magicians have
anything further to add?”
Nobody had suggested the simple change of removing “unsavoury
characters” from the rule yet. Sonea drew in a deep breath and
braced her feet, ready to rise.
“I do,” High Lord Balkan said. Sonea glanced at him, then relaxed.
He stood up. “A small change can make a great di erence. I propose
that we change the wording of the rule, leaving out the reference to
unsavoury characters, since it is ambiguous and open to unfair
interpretation.”
Osen nodded. “Thank you.” He turned back to the hall. “Unless
there is majority disagreement, we have four viable choices: abolish
the rule in its entirety, leave it as it is, change it to remove reference
to unsavoury characters, or change ‘associating with criminals and
unsavoury characters’ to ‘involvement in and bene ting from
criminal activity’. If we have a vote for change we will all vote
again for our preference of the two choices. Form your globe lights
now and move them into position.”
Concentrating a little power, Sonea created a globe of light and
sent it up, with the small cloud of globe lights belonging to the
Higher Magicians, to oat near the Guildhall ceiling. Hundreds of
other lights joined it. The e ect was dazzling.
“Those in favour of abolition change your light to blue,” Osen
ordered. “Those in favour of changing the rule make your light go
green. Those favouring no change at all change to red.”
The dazzling whiteness shifted to a brilliant mix of colours. Sonea
squinted at the globe lights. There aren’t many red ones. A few more
blue than red. But there are clearly more green than any other colour.
She felt her heart lift with hope.
“Now, those in favour of removing ‘unsavoury characters’ from the
rule move your light to the front end of the hall, those in favour of
changing it to forbid magicians from involvement in or bene ting
from criminal activity move to the back.”
Balls of light surged in di erent directions. There was a long pause
while Osen stared upward, his lips moving as he counted. Then he
turned to the Higher Magicians.
“How many of each do you count?”
“Seventy- ve to the back, sixty-nine to the front,” Lord Telano
replied.
Sonea felt her breath catch in her throat. But that means …
Osen nodded. “My count agrees with Lord Telano’s.” He turned to
face the hall. “The vote is cast. We will change the rule so that it
forbids magicians to ‘be involved in or bene t from criminal
activity’.”
Staring up at the globe lights, Sonea watched them icker out of
existence until one was left. Hers. She extinguished it, then looked
down at Regin. His expression matched what she felt. Surprise.
Perplexity. They chose an option introduced at the last moment, which
changed the rule completely. Which both weakened and yet narrowed the
focus of it. Magicians and novices can no longer be punished for
indulging themselves in pleasure houses, because they’re no longer
forbidden to associate with criminals. But at least they can’t be lured into
criminal activity, which is what the rule was meant to prevent in the rst
place.
Regin looked up at her and raised his eyebrows slightly. She lifted
her shoulders a little and let them drop. He looked away and she
followed the direction of his gaze to Pendel. The young man was
smiling and waving at his supporters.
It’s all the same to him, Sonea thought. He’s gained a better result
than he was hoping for. But Regin looks worried now. Oh dear. I can’t
believe I’m actually eager to meet with him again and nd out what he
thinks about this.
But she’d also never thought she’d ever consult and plot with him.
I guess it’s the price you pay for getting involved in Guild politics.
Suddenly you have to be civil to old enemies. Well, thankfully it’s all
decided now. I don’t have to talk to Regin again if I don’t want to.
She looked down at him a second time. He de nitely looked
worried. She sighed.
I guess one more chat wouldn’t hurt.
CHAPTER 15
LATE-NIGHT VISITORS
T he room’s walls were round, like the inside of a sphere. Like the
Dome at the Guild, Lorkin thought. Are we home already?
A large rock lay on the oor, at the lowest point of the curved
surface. It was about the size of a small child curled up, but when he
reached out to it he found it was small enough to t into his palm.
As he cupped it in his hand, it shrank rapidly, then vanished.
Oh, no! I found the storestone, but I’ve lost it again. I’ve destroyed it.
When the Sachakans nd out they’re going to be furious! They’ll kill me
and Dannyl …
Yet the feeling of fear faded quickly. Instead he felt good. No, he
felt very good. As if the sheets on his bed were moving across his
skin, and getting rather personal in a nice way with parts of him
that—
Suddenly he was wide awake.
And someone else was there, very, very close to him. Crouched on
top of him. Smooth skin brushed against his. A pleasant scent lled
his nostrils. The sound of breathing caressed his ear. He could see
nothing. It was utterly dark in the room. But the sound of breathing
was somehow recognisable as coming from a woman’s throat.
Tyvara!
He could feel that she was naked. And she now let her weight
settle onto his body. He ought to be dismayed – to push her o – but
instead a rush of interest went through him. She chose that moment
to take advantage of his arousal and he gasped at the unexpected
pleasure of her body and his locking together. Traitor, he
admonished his body. I should stop her. But he didn’t. It’s not as if she
isn’t willing, came another thought.
He thought brie y of the time they’d spent talking, and how he
had grown to like the glimpses he’d seen of a smart, strong woman
under the forced submissiveness. You like her, he assured himself.
That makes it all right, doesn’t it? But it was getting harder to think.
His thoughts kept dissolving under waves of sheer physical pleasure.
Her breathing and movements began to quicken and sensation
intensi ed. He stopped trying to think and gave in. Then her body
sti ened and she stopped moving. Her chest lifted away from his as
she arched back. He smiled. Well, that proves that she is enjoying it,
too. She gave a mu ed cry.
Mu ed?
Brilliant light suddenly dazzled his eyes. He squinted as his eyes
adjusted, then realised two things.
There was a hand covering Tyvara’s mouth.
And it wasn’t Tyvara.
Another woman loomed over him and the stranger, and he
recognised her with a jolt. This was Tyvara.
But her face was distorted by a savage scowl. She was straining to
hold the stranger, who was still making mu ed sounds and
struggling. Something warm and wet dripped onto his chest. He
looked down. It was red, and a trail of it was running down the
stranger’s side.
Blood!
He felt cold all over, then horror lled him with strength and he
pushed the stranger and Tyvara o him and scrambled away. The
push caused Tyvara’s hand to slip from the stranger’s mouth and for
her to nearly tumble o the end of the bed. As the stranger rolled
onto her side, her eyes locked with Tyvara’s.
“You! But … he has to die. You …” Blood leaked from her mouth.
She coughed and clutched at her side. Her expression lled with
hatred even as she seemed to lose strength. “You are a traitor to
your people,” she spat.
“I told you I would not let you kill him. You should have heeded
my warning and left.”
The woman opened her mouth to reply, then tensed as a spasm
locked her muscles. Tyvara grabbed the woman’s arm.
She’s dying, Lorkin realised. I don’t know what’s going on, but I can’t
just let her die. He sent out magic and surrounded Tyvara, pushing
her away, then leapt onto the bed and reached out to the dying
woman.
And felt himself and his magic e ortlessly countered by another
force. It shattered the containment and rolled him o the end of the
bed to land on the hard oor. He lay still, stunned. She has magic.
Tyvara has magic. She isn’t what she is supposed to be. And … ouch!
“I’m sorry, Lord Lorkin.”
He looked up to see Tyvara standing over him. He glanced at the
other slave, but she lay still with her back to him. He looked back at
Tyvara. How strong is she? He eyed her doubtfully. Is she a Sachakan
black magician? But they don’t teach women magic. Well, I suppose they
might if they need a spy …
“That woman was about to kill you,” she told him.
He stared at her. “That wasn’t the impression I got.”
She smiled, but there was no humour in it. “Yes, she was. She was
sent here to do it. You’re lucky I arrived in time to stop her.”
She’s mad, he thought. But she was also a magician of
undetermined power. It would be safer to reason with her than try
to call for help. And reasoning with her might be more convincing if
he wasn’t half sitting, half lying on the oor with no clothes on.
Slowly he got to his feet. She made no move to stop him. He saw
that the woman she had stabbed was staring up at the ceiling. Or
beyond it. And not seeing anything at all – or ever again. He
shuddered.
Backing up to the set of robes that the slaves had cleaned and left
ready for him, hanging on the wall, he took the trousers. Blood had
smeared across his chest. He wiped it o onto a cloth the slaves left
each night, along with water and a bowl, so he could wash in the
morning.
“I gather from your sceptical manner that you don’t know of
Lover’s Death,” Tyvara said. “It’s a form of higher magic. When a
man or woman reaches the peak of pleasure during lovemaking
their natural protection against invasive magic falters, and they are
vulnerable to being stripped of all power – and their life. Sachakan
men know of Lover’s Death and are wary of it, but they don’t know
how to do it. They used to, apparently, but lost the knowledge when
they stopped teaching women magic.”
“You’re a woman,” Lorkin pointed out as he pulled his trousers on.
“So how is it you know magic?”
She smiled. “Men stopped teaching women magic. Women,
however, did not.”
“You know how to do this Lover’s Death thing, too?” His notebook
and his mother’s blood ring lay on the table. He picked up the ring
as he reached out to the overrobe, hoping she only saw the latter
movement, and held it in his hand as he put on the overrobe. Then
he picked up his notebook, slipped it into the internal pocket and
dropped the ring in at the same time.
“Yes. Although it’s not my preferred method of assassination.” She
looked at the stranger. Following her gaze, Lorkin considered the
corpse. If Tyvara knows one method of higher magic there’s a good
chance she knows others. And that she is much, much stronger than me.
“What are you, really? You’re obviously not a real slave.”
“I am a spy. I was sent here to protect you.”
“By who?”
“I can’t tell you that.”
“But whoever it is, he or she wants me alive?”
“Yes.”
He looked at the dead woman. “You … you, er, killed her to save
me.”
“Yes. If I hadn’t found her here with you, you would have been the
corpse, not her.” She sighed. “I apologise. I made a mistake. I
thought you were safe. After all, you told me you weren’t intending
to bed any slaves. I should not have believed you.”
He felt his face heat. “I didn’t intend to.”
“You weren’t exactly trying to stop her.”
“It was dark. I thought she was …” He caught himself. Tyvara
wasn’t the person he’d thought she was. She was a black magician, a
spy, and admitted to having preferred methods of assassination. It
might not be a good idea to let her think he found her attractive.
And I’m not sure I do nd the person she really is attractive, after all.
Her eyes were darker than ever. They narrowed. “You thought she
was what?”
He looked away, then forced himself to meet her gaze. “Someone
else. I hadn’t woken up properly. I thought I was dreaming.”
“You must have interesting and pleasant dreams,” she observed.
“Now, grab your things.”
“Things?”
“Whatever you don’t want to leave behind.”
“I’m leaving?”
“Yes.” She looked at the dead woman again. “When the people
who sent her realise she failed to kill you they’ll send someone else
to nish the job. And they’ll send someone to kill me at the same
time. It’s not safe here for either of us, and I need you alive.”
“And D— … Ambassador Dannyl?”
She smiled. “He’s not a target.”
“How are you so sure?”
“Because he’s not the son of the man who crossed them.”
He froze in surprise. Was Mother right? She was so sure someone
would hold a grudge against me because of what she and father had
done.
She took a step toward the door. “Hurry. We don’t have much
time.”
He did not move. Do I believe her? Do I have a choice? She knows
black magic. She can probably force me to go with her. And if she wants
me dead why would she save my life? Unless that was a lie, and she just
killed an innocent slave in order to convince me of … something.
Then he remembered the look on the stranger’s face when she saw
Tyvara. “But … he has to die,” she’d said. That con rmed that she’d
wanted to kill him. “You are a traitor to your people!” she’d also said
to Tyvara. Did “your people” mean the Sachakan people? Suddenly
his mother’s concerns seemed much too real. At least Tyvara seems to
want to keep me alive. If I stay here, who knows what will happen? Well,
Tyvara believes someone else will try to kill me.
He was in trouble. But he remembered what he’d decided at the
Hearing. Whatever trouble he got into, he had to get himself out of
again. Weighing up the choices he had, he settled on what he hoped
was the best one.
He glanced around the room. Did he need anything else? No. He
already had his mother’s ring. He walked over to Tyvara.
“I have everything I need.”
She nodded and turned to the doorway, peering out into the
corridor.
“So, who was it exactly that you said my father crossed?” he
asked.
She rolled her eyes. “We don’t have time for me to explain.”
“I knew you’d say that.”
“But I will, later.”
“I’m taking that as a promise,” he told her.
She frowned, placed a hand on her lips to indicate silence, then
beckoned and quietly slipped out into the dark corridors of the
Guild House.
Once Cery would have travelled familiar parts of the Thieves’ Road
without a light. There had been little danger of encountering a knife
in the dark, as only those who had the approval of the Thieves had
used the network of passages under the city, and the truce between
the Thieves prevented any but approved murders happening on the
road.
Now there was no truce, and anyone who dared could travel the
road. It had quickly become so dangerous that few did, which,
ironically, made the deserted parts safer. And stories of oversized
rodents and monsters kept all but the boldest from exploring.
But I still wouldn’t travel without a light, Cery thought as he
approached a corner. His heart had been beating uncomfortably fast
since they had entered the road. He would not relax again until
they’d left it. Peering around the turn, he lifted the lamp and felt yet
another wave of relief as he saw the tunnel ahead was unoccupied.
Then he realised that what he’d assumed was the next turn was
actually rubble lling the space. He sighed and turned back to Gol.
“Another blockage,” he said.
Gol’s eyebrows rose. “It wasn’t there last time.”
“No.” Cery looked up at the ceiling. He winced as he saw the crack
where brickwork was separating. “Nobody does any maintenance
any more. We’ll have to go around.”
They backtracked and Cery took a right-hand passage. Gol
hesitated before following.
“Aren’t we … ?” the big man asked.
“Getting real close to the Slig City?” Cery nished. “Yes. We better
be quiet.”
The Sligs had been a group of street urchins who’d found refuge in
the underground passages after their area of slums had been lost to
new roads and buildings. They’d settled underground, only coming
up to steal food. Somehow they’d survived, grown up and bred in
the darkness, and now they defended their territory with savage
ferocity.
The Thief who operated in the area above Slig City had once tried
to gain control of them. His corpse and those of his men had washed
out of the sewers a few days later.
After that, people living above had begun leaving food out by
known tunnel entrances in the hopes of keeping the Sligs’ favour.
At each tunnel entrance, Cery lifted his lamp and examined the
brickwork. The Sligs always painted a symbol on the walls around
the edges of their territory. Only when he and Gol had moved away
from the underworld citizen’s domain again did he stop looking for
signs of them. Unfortunately, he began to encounter cave-ins and
signs of decay again. But soon they’d reached the old entrance to
the passages under the Guild.
The entrance had been destroyed after the Ichani Invasion, but
Cery had arranged for a new tunnel to be dug. As a precaution, he’d
included false entrances and clever deceptions that would lead
explorers away again. Cery paused to listen and look for any
observers, then slipped through the correct one, Gol following.
“Good luck,” Gol said as he stopped beside the niche where he
usually waited when Cery made one of his journeys to meet Sonea.
“You, too,” Cery replied. “Don’t talk to any strangers.”
The big man humphed and lifted his lamp up to examine the
niche. Brushing away a few faren webs, he sat down on the shelf
and yawned. Cery turned away and set o into the passages under
the Guild Grounds.
Like much of the Thieves’ Road, these passages were in disrepair.
They had never been in good condition anyway, except where High
Lord Akkarin had made repairs. But the secretive magician hadn’t
been able to source much in the way of building materials, since it
would have aroused suspicion, and had mostly reused bricks from
other parts of the maze to patch the walls. The underlying problems
of damp and shifting soil had never been solved.
I’m sure the Guild would rather they were lled in. I’d x them myself,
but if the Guild discovered a Thief repairing their underground passages I
don’t think they’d be too pleased. I doubt they’d accept the excuse that
all I really want is to be able to meet up with Sonea now and then.
Cery’s heart was still beating quickly, but more from excitement
than fear now. Sneaking into the Guild always gave him a childish
thrill. Skirting dangerous areas or cave-ins made Cery’s path more
complicated than it needed to be, but once he was under the
University foundations things improved. The passage from the
University to the Magicians’ Quarters was the most worrying, as it
was the only underground route between the buildings. Its main
function was as a sewer, with a maintenance shelf along one side of
the ditch. But nobody had maintained it for years, he suspected.
Water ran from cracks in the walls and seeped down through the
domed ceiling.
One day there’ll be a cave-in, and they’re going to discover a rather
fragrant downside to not servicing their sewer.
Once under the Quarters’ foundations, the passage widened a
little. Numbers had been carved below rectangular holes in the
ceiling. He found the one he was looking for, set his lamp down in a
dry spot, then climbed up the wall into the opening.
This was the hardest part of the journey. The openings were at the
base of some sort of unused chute system that connected to the roof
of the building above. Clean air constantly owed down them. He
had two favourite theories: either it was a ventilation system to keep
the sewer air from getting too poisonous, or it was a rubbish
disposal system designed not to reek of the sewer below.
The interior was small, but thankfully dry. He climbed slowly,
taking his time and resting often. One day I’m going to be too old to
do this. Then I’ll have to walk in via the Guild Gates. Or Sonea will have
to come see me.
Finally, he reached the wall behind her rooms. He’d removed a
section of bricks long ago, exposing the wood panelling behind. He
put his eye to the spy hole he’d drilled into the wood.
The room beyond was dark and empty. But that was the usual
situation at this time of night. He carefully and quietly grasped the
handles he’d attached to the back of a section of panelling, lifted
and twisted.
The panelling squeaked a little as it came free. I should bring some
wax next time to x that, he thought. He stepped through the
opening, then set the panelling back in place.
It was a matter of some pride and satisfaction to him that Sonea
had never seen him enter this way. She insisted on not knowing how
he entered or left her rooms. The less she knew, the better for the
both of them. It was not mortally dangerous to come here, but the
consequences wouldn’t be good for her if his visits were discovered,
and that knowledge tempered the mischievous delight he felt at
reaching her quarters unnoticed.
He made a few deliberate noises, knocking against furniture and
stepping on a oorboard he knew creaked, then waited. But she did
not emerge from the bedroom. Moving to the door, he opened it a
crack. The bed was neat and unused. The room was empty.
Disappointment extinguished the lingering excitement of his
journey. He sat down. She had never been absent before. I never
considered she might not be here. What do I do now? Wait for her?
But if someone else returned with her it would be a bit awkward.
He’d have no time to escape to the chute. And the chute was too
uncomfortable a place to wait and watch for her.
Cursing under his breath, he stood up again and quietly searched
her furniture. He found what he sought in a drawer: paper and a
pen. Tearing a small corner from a sheet of paper, he drew a tiny
picture of a ceryni, the rodent that was his namesake, and slipped it
under the door to her bedroom.
Then he returned to the panelling and started the long journey
home.
The slave that greeted Dannyl at the door of the Guild House was
especially quick to abase himself. Too many exciting discoveries
were hovering at the fore of Dannyl’s thoughts, however, and he did
not register what the man said. On the way home from the palace,
he had written in his notebook as much as he could of what the king
had told him of Sachakan history, but even as he walked down the
corridor he remembered something he’d forgotten.
I need to sit down and get it all onto paper. It’s going to be a long night,
I suspect. I wonder if Achati could arrange a quiet night for me
tomorrow … what’s this?
In the Master’s Room a sea of slaves covered the oor, their bodies
fanning out from the doorway. The door slave had joined them. It
was such a surreal sight he could not speak for a moment.
“Rise,” he ordered.
As one the group slowly got to its feet. He saw men and women he
did not recognise. Some with robust clothing suited to outdoors
work, others with what looked like food stains down their leather
aprons.
“Why are you all here?” he asked.
The slaves exchanged glances, then their gazes locked on the door
slave. The man hunched over as if their stares had weight.
“L-Lord Lorkin is … is … is …”
Dannyl felt his heart skip a beat, then start racing. Only something
terrible warranted this amount of cowering.
“He is what? Dead?”
The man shook his head and relief rushed over Dannyl. “Then
what?”
“G-gone.”
The man threw himself on the oor again, then the rest of the
slaves followed suit. Irritated, Dannyl drew in a deep breath and
made himself speak calmly.
“Gone where?”
“We don’t know,” the door slave said, his voice strangled. “But …
he left … in his room.”
He left something in his room. Most likely a letter explaining why he’s
gone. And for some reason the slaves think I’ll be angry. Has Lorkin
taken it into his head to go home?
“Get up,” he ordered. “All of you. Go back to what you were
doing. No. Wait.” The slaves had begun to scramble to their feet. I
might need to question them. “Stay here. You,” he pointed to the door
slave, “come with me.”
The man’s brown face went a pasty colour. He followed Dannyl
silently through the Guild House to Lorkin’s rooms. Lamps had been
lit around the main room, and one still burned in the bedroom.
“Lord Lorkin?” Dannyl called, not really expecting an answer. If
Lorkin had told them he was leaving, he wasn’t likely to be here.
Still, Dannyl walked across to the bedroom door and looked inside.
What he saw made his blood turn to ice.
A naked Sachakan woman lay there, twisted so that her head faced
the ceiling but her back was turned toward him. Her eyes staring up
at the ceiling blankly. The sheets about her were stained dark red.
In places they still glistened wetly. He could see the wound in her
back.
Spinning around, Dannyl xed the door slave with a stern stare.
“How did this happen?”
The man cringed. “I don’t know. Nobody knows. We heard noises.
Voices. After they stopped we came to see.” His eyes slid to the
corpse, then quickly away again.
Did Lorkin do this? Dannyl wanted to ask. But if the man says he
doesn’t know what happened, he won’t know if Lorkin was responsible.
“Who is she?” Dannyl asked instead.
“Riva.”
“Is she one of the slaves of this house?”
“Y-yes.”
“Is anyone else missing?”
The man frowned, then his eyes widened. “Tyvara.”
“Another slave?”
“Yes. Like Riva. A serving slave.”
Dannyl considered the dead woman again. Had this Tyvara been
involved in the murder somehow? Or had she su ered the same
fate?
“Were Riva and Tyvara … friendly to each other?” Dannyl asked.
“Has anyone seen them speaking?”
“I-I don’t know.” The man looked at the oor. “I will ask.”
“No,” Dannyl said. “Bring the slaves to me. Have them line up in
the corridor outside and tell them not to speak.” The man hurried
away. I suppose they’ve already had time to collude and think of good
alibis or excuses. But they won’t be able to modify their story.
He would have to send a message to Ashaki Achati without delay.
The slaves belonged to the king. Dannyl wasn’t sure if the murder of
one of them would be of much concern. But Lorkin’s leaving was.
Especially if he had been taken against his will. Especially if he’d
murdered the slave.
Achati will no doubt question all the slaves himself. He’ll probably read
their minds. It’s possible he’ll hide any information he doesn’t think I
ought to hear. So I must nd out everything I can before Achati arrives.
He straightened as a chill ran down his spine. Is it a coincidence
that I was nally invited to the palace the night one of his slaves was
murdered here?
Had Lorkin killed the slave? Surely not. But it certainly looked like
it. Was it self-defence? I should check for evidence either way before
the king’s men turn up. Moving into the room, he stared at the body.
Aside from the wound, there was a line of red beaded blood along a
shallow cut on her arm. Interesting. That looks like evidence of black
magic. He forced himself to touch the skin of the woman’s thigh and
search with his senses. Sure enough, the body had been drained of
energy. Black magic had been used. The relief he felt was
overwhelming. It can’t have been Lorkin.
Then why had Lorkin left? Was he a prisoner of a Sachakan black
magician? Suddenly Dannyl felt ill.
When Sonea nds out … But would she have to yet? If he managed
to track down Lorkin quickly there’d be no bad news to deliver, just
a story with a happy ending. He hoped.
He had to nd Lorkin, and fast. Sounds from the corridor told him
the slaves had arrived for questioning. He sighed. It was going to be
a long night. But not for the reasons he would have preferred.
PART TWO
CHAPTER 16
HUNTER
H olding the soiled bandages in the air with magic, Sonea sent a
ash of heat toward them. They burst into ame and quickly
shrivelled into ash. The smell of burnt cloth, mixed with a
sickly cooked meat scent, tainted the air. She let the ashes fall into a
bucket kept in the room for the purpose, then heated a little scented
oil in a dish with magic until the tangy smell covered the less
pleasant ones. The clean-up from the last patient nished, she willed
the door to the examination room open.
The man who stepped inside was middle-aged, short, and familiar.
She felt her heart skip a beat as she recognised him.
“Cery!” she hissed. She cast a quick look around the room, even
though she knew nobody was there but her. “What are you doing
here?”
He shrugged and sat down in one of the chairs for patients and
their families. “I tried your rooms in the Guild, but you weren’t
there.”
“You could have come back tomorrow night,” she said. If he was
recognised, and someone reported his visit back to the Guild,
everyone would know she’d been associating with a Thief. Though
that’s not against any rules now. But it would be seen as suspicious, so
soon after she’d pushed to have the rule changed. If it looked as if
she was using the hospice as a place to meet Thieves it could
endanger all she had achieved here.
Ironically, he was in greater danger of being recognised at the
hospice than at the Guild. Sonea doubted that any magicians other
than Rothen would remember Cery after all these years, but some of
the patients in the hospice might have had dealings with Cery, and
they might tell one of the helpers or Healers who she was meeting.
“It’s too important to wait,” Cery told her.
He met her gaze levelly. His serious expression made him look so
di erent to the young street urchin she had hung out with as a
child. He looked haggard and sad, and she felt a fresh pang of
sympathy. He was still grieving for his family. She drew in a deep
breath and let it out again slowly and quietly.
“How are you getting on?”
His shoulders rose again. “Well enough. Keeping myself occupied
nding a rogue magician in the city.”
She blinked, then couldn’t help smiling. “A rogue, eh?”
“Yes.”
Yes, that is too important to wait. She leaned back in her chair. “Go
on then. Start from the beginning.”
He nodded. “Well, it all began when my lockmaker claimed the
locks to my hideout were opened with magic.”
As he continued, she watched him closely. At any mention of his
family he winced as if in pain, and his eyes grew haunted. But each
time he spoke of the Thief Hunter his eyes gleamed and his jaw
hardened. This search is as much a way to distract himself from the loss
as it is a hunt for revenge.
Finally he told her, triumphantly, of watching the foreign woman
using magic to open the safebox.
“A woman,” he repeated. “With dark skin like a Lonmar, and
straight black hair. From her voice I’d say she was old, but she
didn’t move like an elderly person. And her accent was foreign, but
not one I’ve heard before. I’d wager she’s not from any of the Allied
Lands.”
“Sachakan?”
“No. I’d have known that one.”
Sonea considered his story. There’s nobody of that description in
the Guild. Cery might have been mistaken, and the woman was a
Lonmar. The Lonmars were dark-skinned, and kept their women
hidden away, so a Lonmar woman might be so unusual a sight as to
seem like she was of a di erent race. The Lonmars didn’t allow their
women to be taught magic, however. If she was a natural, and her
power had developed spontaneously, the Lonmars would have been
forced to teach her to control it. But after that … we’re not sure what
the Lonmars do with female magicians. We assume they simply forbid
the woman to use magic, but it’s possible they block her powers. This
rogue might have run away in order to escape that fate.
If that was true, it was strange that she had come to Imardin.
Surely she knew that the Guild was bound by the terms of alliance
to respect Lonmar’s laws regarding female magicians. If they found
her they had to send her home.
But perhaps Cery had guessed why she had: books. If she had run
away in order to be free to learn and use magic, then Imardin was
the place she’d most likely get hold of magical information. But
books on magic can’t be cheap. Is she stealing money from the Thieves
she kills, or hiring herself out as a killer of Thieves?
Yet while Cery had said the lock to his hideout was opened with
magic, he had not said that his family were killed with it. Perhaps
she was only o ering magical services, not those of an assassin.
Sonea frowned. “How can you be sure this woman and the Thief
Hunter are the same person?”
“Either she is, or she’s working for the Thief Hunter, or there are
two rogues out there. Once you catch her you can read her mind
and nd out.”
“Did you question the seller afterwards?”
He shook his head. “We need him and his shop for another trap.”
His eyes gleamed. “Only next time you’ll be with me and we’ll catch
ourselves a rogue.”
Sonea frowned. “I wish that were possible, but I’m not free to go
running around the city these days, Cery. I must ask permission, if I
am not going to the hospices.”
His shoulders sagged in almost childlike disappointment. He
looked thoughtful. “Perhaps if I lured her here somehow.”
“I doubt she’ll go anywhere near Guild magicians, and hospices
are always full of them.”
“Unless you arrange for everyone to leave one night, and we put
about a rumour that there are books on Healing lying around here.”
“I’d have to tell them why, and if I do that I may as well just tell
the Guild about the rogue and leave it to them to nd her.”
“Can’t you come up with another reason?”
Sonea sighed. She doubted that Cery cared if he wasn’t credited
with nding a rogue and helping the Guild to catch her. He only
wanted revenge – and no doubt to save himself from being the Thief
Hunter’s next victim.
I’d like to help him. But the Guild will expect me to pass news about
the rogue on to them, and if it is discovered that I didn’t it’ll be yet
another reason for people to distrust me. Her awless record of
trustworthiness since the Ichani Invasion would be tainted by the
lie, and people were already so touchy about her past and
knowledge of black magic. They would curb her freedom to run the
hospices. They’d restrict her to the Guild grounds.
I’m better o passing the information on to the Higher Magicians and
letting them deal with it. It doesn’t matter if it’s me or someone else who
nds the rogue, only that she is found. Either way, Cery will have both
revenge and safety.
“Do you know where the woman is now?” she asked.
Cery shook his head. “But I know what she looks like, and her
appearance is strange enough that I can set others looking for her
too.”
“Don’t let anyone approach her,” she warned. “She’s clearly in
control of her powers, and old enough to have some skill in using
them.”
“Oh, she’s nothing like you were,” Cery agreed, his lips stretching
into a humourless grin. “You might’ve wanted to kill a Thief or two
all those years ago, but you never got to the point of hunting them
down and … or …” He looked away, his expression suddenly grim.
… or killing their families, she nished silently, feeling a pang of
sympathy. “I need to think about this, but I’ll probably have to tell
the Guild and leave the hunt to them.”
“No!” he protested. “They’ll just bungle it like they did with you.”
“Or they’ll take what they learned from that experience and tackle
this case di erently.”
He scowled. “A lot di erently, I hope.”
“Are you willing to work with them?” she asked, meeting and
holding his gaze.
He grimaced, then sighed. “Maybe. Yes. I guess I have to. Don’t
have much choice, do I?”
“Not really. Tell me how they can contact you.”
Cery sighed. “Could you … sleep on it before telling anyone?”
She smiled. “All right. I’ll decide before tonight’s shift. Either
you’ll hear from me or the Guild will come knocking at your door.”
The kitchen slave’s eyes had gone round the moment he’d entered
the room and spotted the corpse, and had remained wide through
all Dannyl’s questions. Yet he answered calmly and without
hesitation.
“When did you last see Tyvara?” Dannyl asked.
“Last night. I passed her in the corridor. She was heading for these
rooms.”
“Did she say anything?”
“No.”
“Look any di erent to usual? Nervous, perhaps?”
“No.” The slave paused. “She looked angry, I think. It was dark.”
Dannyl nodded and noted the small detail. He had quite a list of
them now, but then, he had been interviewing slaves for several
hours.
“You said she and Riva knew each other. Did you ever see them
arguing? Any odd behaviour?”
“They argued, yes. Tyvara told Riva what to do a lot. Riva didn’t
like it. Tyvara had no right to. But,” the man shrugged, “it
happens.”
“That some slaves order around others?”
The man nodded. “Yes.”
“Did you see them arguing any time yesterday, or hear of them
arguing?”
The man opened his mouth to reply, but paused at a soft sound
from the doorway. Dannyl looked up to see the door slave hovering
nervously in the entrance. The man threw himself to the oor.
“You may rise. What did you come to tell me?” Dannyl asked.
“Ashaki Achati has arrived.” The slave was wringing his hands, as
he had every time Dannyl had seen him since arriving home.
Dannyl turned to the kitchen slave he was interviewing. “You may
go.”
Both slaves scurried away as Dannyl rose and tucked his notebook
into his robes. He looked around Lorkin’s rooms, then strode out of
them and made his way to the Master’s Room. He arrived just in
time to meet Achati.
“Welcome, Ashaki Achati,” he said.
“Ambassador Dannyl,” Achati replied. “I’m afraid it took some
time for your slave to track me down. What has happened? All he
would tell me was that it was urgent.”
Dannyl beckoned. “Come and I’ll show you.”
The Sachakan followed Dannyl through the Guild House silently,
to Dannyl’s relief. The late hour and constant questioning of slaves
had begun to take their toll. But there is still much to do. I won’t be
sleeping for a while. He drew a little magic and used it to soothe
away the tiredness. I’ll be doing that a few more times in the coming
days, I suspect.
They arrived at Lorkin’s rooms. Dannyl led Achati in and to the
door of the bedroom. Lamps had burned low, but the body was still
clear and shocking to behold.
“A dead slave,” Achati said, moving inside and peering at her. “I
see why you are concerned.”
“To put it lightly.”
“Did your … ?” Achati’s gesture took in the rooms.
“No. The body is empty of energy. Whoever killed her used bl— …
higher magic, which Lorkin has not been taught.”
Achati glanced at him, then frowned and touched the dead
woman’s arm. While the Guild did not want the Sachakans knowing
how few Kyralian magicians could use black magic, it didn’t require
Dannyl to pretend that they all did either. It would seem plausible
that Lorkin, as a low-status magician, would not yet have been
taught it. It’ll be stranger to them that I do not know it.
“So she has,” Achati said, withdrawing his hand with a grimace of
distaste. “But this means whoever did kill her had been taught it.”
“One of the other slaves, a woman named Tyvara, is missing. I
have questioned most of the slaves here and she looks the most
likely culprit.”
Instead of expressing surprise, as Dannyl expected, Achati looked
worried. “You read their minds?”
“No. Guild magicians are not allowed to read minds without the
permission of the Higher Magicians.”
Achati’s eyebrows rose. “Then how do you know they are telling
the truth?”
“The slaves were expecting to have their minds read, so they
would not have come up with a false story or planned answers
before I started questioning them. I had them wait in the corridor in
silence, so they could not do so once they realised I wasn’t going to
be reading their minds. Their stories match, so I doubt they are
lying.”
The Sachakan looked intrigued. “But what would you learn by
questioning them that I wouldn’t by reading their minds?”
“Perhaps nothing.” Dannyl drew out his notebook and smiled. “But
there may be advantages. We won’t know until we compare
methods.”
Achati looked amused. “Shall I read their minds now to test which
is better, or do you want to tell me what you have learned?”
Dannyl looked at the corpse. “It would be better if I told you, to
save time. Do you agree that this has the look of a spontaneous
killing rather than a planned one?”
Achati nodded.
“I’ve learned that Tyvara and the dead woman, Riva, often argued.
Riva appears to have been the subordinate of Tyvara. Riva wanted
to be Lorkin’s serving slave the day he arrived, but Tyvara took her
place. Both women were formerly of Ashaki Tikako’s household, and
often received messages from slaves there – though each had a
separate contact. They did not receive messages from slaves in other
households, so I think the most likely place Tyvara would have
taken Lorkin is there.”
Achati frowned. “If we are to look for them there, we must be
sure. Could someone else have taken him?”
“Lorkin had no other visitors. If he was taken against his will, the
abductor must be a powerful magician. If not …” Dannyl shrugged.
“They must be persuasive.”
Achati sighed and nodded. “If this Tyvara does know higher
magic, it is likely she is no true slave. She must be a spy.”
“A spy for whom?” Dannyl asked.
“I don’t know.” Achati grimaced. “Not the king’s, as he would
have warned me about her. But if whoever sent her wanted Lorkin
dead, he would be. If they have taken him from here alive, they
must have a purpose for him.”
“What purpose?”
“Blackmail, perhaps?” Achati looked thoughtful. “The question is,
is the target King Amakira, or the Guild – or both?”
Dannyl smiled wryly. “Must be the Guild. If they sought to
embarrass the king, they’d have abducted me. A kidnapped
Ambassador has more embarrassment value than a mere assistant.”
“But he’s not a mere assistant,” Achati said, his eyebrows rising.
“You didn’t believe we were unaware of his parentage, did you?”
Dannyl sighed. “I guess it was too much to hope you hadn’t
noticed.”
“If it eases your mind, we did not think he would be in any danger
because of it. In truth, we believed the prospect of his mother taking
her rightful revenge if he was harmed was enough to deter foolish
acts like this. Though …” He stopped, turned back to the dead
woman, and frowned as if he’d thought of something.
“Yes?” Dannyl prompted.
The Sachakan shook his head. “There is another group known for
abducting people, but they have nothing to gain from taking him
and he is not their usual sort of target. No. We will go to Ashaki
Tikako’s house. If we are in luck your assistant will be found there
and be returned to the Guild House before the day is done.” He
paused. “Though you may want to get rid of the slave’s body before
then.”
Dannyl nodded in agreement. “Not exactly a pleasant welcome
home gift. If you are done examining her, I’ll get the slaves to do
with her whatever they do with their dead.”
Since they did not need the new hideout as a trap for the Thief
Hunter, Cery had ordered the place to be sealed up. He and Gol had
moved back to his storeroom apartment next to the old city wall.
Cery hadn’t said anything to Gol about his conversation with
Sonea until the morning. Her response to his news had been so
di erent to what he’d been expecting that he’d needed time to
think, to reconsider his plans, and to wonder if he’d regret what
he’d agreed to.
“Why isn’t she going after the rogue herself?” Gol asked again.
Cery sighed and lifted his shoulders. “She said she wasn’t free to
go running around the city these days. She can go to the hospice,
but not anywhere else without asking rst.”
Gol scowled. “Ungrateful sods. After all she did to save the city.”
Yes, but most Kyralians are scared of her, Cery thought. They’ve got
her as locked away as well they can without actually putting her in a
prison. They don’t want to take any risks they don’t have to. I can
understand that. But it makes things a bit inconvenient for me.
“So we’re going to work with the Guild?”
“We have to.” Cery grimaced. “Nobody but us can recognise the
rogue. And maybe we can help stop them making a complete mess
of things.”
Gol’s expression told Cery how little he believed that. “What about
Skellin? You going to tell him?”
“We still don’t have proof the woman is the Thief Hunter, only
that she uses magic.”
“Which is why you’re calling her ‘the rogue’ now,” Gol observed.
“Yes. Until we know for sure she is the Thief Hunter.”
Gol crossed his arms. “You’re afraid you’ll make a fool of
yourself.”
Cery looked at his friend reproachfully. “I don’t want to waste
Skellin’s time. Or owe him any favours when I don’t have to.”
“But you said he wasn’t what you thought he’d be.”
“No.” Cery grimaced. “But he’s still a Thief and a rot importer.
Better men than me and you have done bad things for reasons they
believed were good.”
“They’re the dangerous ones,” Gol agreed. “Use family or the pride
of a House or protecting the country and anything is excusable.”
Cery nodded. “I’d rather be honest with myself when it comes to
business. I wanted to be better o than most dwells. Don’t want to
die a beggar. I’m not pretending I got higher purposes than that.”
“So you need money. And to get money you need to be powerful.
And unless you’re from the Houses, there’s no way you’re growing
powerful by any honest trade.”
“It’s all about surviving. Which is what I think Skellin is doing. He
said he tried importing rot as a way to establish himself as a Thief.”
“It worked.”
Cery sighed. “It did. And his conscience isn’t so bothered that he’s
got himself out of the trade.”
“He said he would, though.”
“I’ll believe that when I see it. Rot’s made him one of the most
powerful men in the city. He’s got most of the Thieves working for
him or owing him favours. I don’t think he’d give that up too
quick.” He shook his head. “I’m not going to risk getting caught up
in that if I don’t have to.”
Gol snorted. “You’re too smart to let him talk you into anything,
Cery.”
Cery looked at his friend and bodyguard. “You think I should tell
him?”
The big man pursed his lips. “If somethin’s telling you not to, then
don’t. But if we have trouble nding the Rogue I reckon it’d be
interesting to see what Skellin’s capable of.” He shrugged. “Maybe
not much. Or maybe he’d reveal how powerful he really is.”
CHAPTER 17
HUNTED
The Black Tub bathhouse wasn’t as clean as Cery would have liked.
It stank of mould and the cheap perfume meant to mask the odour,
and the gowns he and Gol had been given bore some interesting
repairs and stains. But the place was the only establishment within
sight of the pawnshop that they could plausibly linger in, so it
needed investigation.
They had been led to a changing room and left there. It was on the
rst oor, with cheap undecorated window screens hiding the
customers from the street. After changing into the gowns, Gol had
slipped out of the room to investigate those next to it and Cery had
moved a chair to one of the windows. Cery slid the screen open and
smiled in satisfaction as he saw that the pawnshop was within view.
The door opened again, but it was only Gol returning.
“What do you think?”
“There’s nobody in the rooms around us, but I can’t vouch for
upstairs. We can talk, but quietly.” Then he grimaced. “It’s a bit run
down.”
“And the service is slow,” Cery agreed. “Probably from lack of
sta .” He indicated the window. “But the view is good.”
Gol moved closer and peered outside. “It sure is.”
“We should take it in turns. One watching while the other scrubs
up.”
The big man grimaced. “The water better not be as bad as this
place smells.” He moved another chair and sat down. “Did our
friend say anything about how she intended to do her business?”
Cery shook his head. Sonea’s message had been cryptic, saying
only that she would be dealing with the matter he had drawn her
attention to, thanking him for the information and telling him to
send any further news to the hospice. Clearly she was being cryptic in
case the letter was intercepted. If she is dealing with the matter of the
rogue then it’s unlikely she’s told the Guild anything. They wouldn’t trust
her with the task of nding the woman.
A knock came from the door. Cery slid closed the screen back
across the window.
“Come in,” he called.
The same thin young woman who had led them to the changing
room opened the door and stepped inside. She did not meet their
eyes.
“The bath is nearly ready. Would you like it warm or hot?”
“Hot,” Cery replied.
“Would you like it scented? We have—”
“No,” Gol interrupted rmly.
“Do you have a little salt?” Cery asked. He’d heard a salt bath was
good for sore muscles, and he was still aching from the practice
knife- ght bout he’d had that morning. It was also good for cleaning
bad water, too.
“We do.” She named a price that raised Gol’s eyebrows.
“We’ll have it,” Cery told her.
The girl nodded politely and left the room. Turning to the
window, Cery opened the screen again and glanced outside. The
street was busier now.
“Should we convince Makkin the Buyer to help us?” Gol asked.
“He’s already scared of her so it won’t make her suspicious if he acts
a bit nervous.”
“He’s the sort that’ll cooperate with whoever he’s most scared of,”
Cery replied. “If he knows she has magic he’ll be more scared of her
than us.”
“She sent him out of the room before she opened the safe. That
suggests to me he doesn’t know she has magic.”
“Yes, but …”
Gol hissed. Cery looked at the man and found him staring out of
the window.
“What?”
“Is that her? In front of Makkin’s shop.”
Cery spun back to the window. A stooped woman had stopped in
front of the shop. Her hair was streaked with grey. For a moment
Cery was sure Gol was mistaken – so much so that he was about to
tease him – then the woman turned her head to survey the street.
He felt a shiver of recognition.
He looked at Gol. Gol stared at him. Then they both looked down
at the wraps they were wearing.
“I’ll go,” Gol said. “You watch.” He leapt over to the pile of clothes
he’d removed and hastily began to dress. Cery turned back to the
window and watched as the woman entered the shop.
His heart was hammering. He felt every muscle in his body slowly
tense, and counted every breath.
“She still in there?”
“Yes,” Cery replied. “Whatever you do, don’t let her see you’re
following her. Even if you have to pay someone to—”
“I know, I know,” Gol said impatiently. Cery heard him open the
door. At the same time he saw the door to the shop open and the
woman stepped out.
“She’s leaving,” he said.
Gol didn’t reply. Cery turned to nd the big man gone and the
door swinging open. He looked back down into the street and
caught a glimpse of the woman just before she moved out of view. A
moment later Gol appeared. Cery breathed a sigh of relief as his
friend and bodyguard headed in the same direction, his steps
con dent.
Take care, old friend, Cery thought.
“Um … sorry for the wait.”
He turned to nd the bathhouse girl standing in the doorway. Her
eyes shifted from him to the window screen then to the oor. Cery
closed the screen and stood up.
“The bath is ready?”
“Yes.”
“Good. My friend had to leave. Take me to the bath.”
Her shoulders drooped at the loss of a customer, then she gestured
for him to follow and led him out of the room.
CHAPTER 18
THE TRAITOR
A s Gol had warned, the area of the city the rogue lived in was
surprisingly respectable, and not the sort where anyone could
loiter and remain inconspicuous. She rented the basement of a
shoemaker’s shop and home. All of the street’s buildings had a shop
at ground level and accommodation for the shopkeeper upstairs.
Cery had sent some of his people out to visit local shops to see if
he could watch for the woman from within one of them. One
reported overhearing a shopkeeper say his neighbour was away
visiting his wife’s family in Elyne, and a few picked locks later Cery
was sitting in the absent shopkeeper’s rst oor guest room,
relaxing in a comfortable chair next to the street side window,
watching night fall and lamp-lighters setting the street aglow with
light.
He’d also sent people to watch the rear entrance to the
shoemaker’s home. The basement was accessible not just via the
shop above it but through a sunken back door. Regular reports
assured him that she hadn’t left.
Gol was taking longer than he ought to, though. Did I
misunderstand Sonea’s message? She said she would be dealing with “the
matter” and that I should send information to the hospice. Well, I’ve
done that.
A door opened downstairs and he tensed. The footsteps of two or
three people thumped up the staircase. Were they his people, or the
shopkeeper and his family returning? He moved quickly, concealing
himself behind the open door where he could hopefully slip out of
the room unnoticed if he needed to. In case they should notice him,
he slipped a hand into his coat to where he kept his most visually
impressive knife.
“Cery?” a familiar voice called.
Gol. Letting out a sigh of relief, Cery stepped out from behind the
door to nd his bodyguard and two people wearing long concealing
cloaks nearing the top of the stairs. He recognised Sonea. Cery
narrowed his eyes at the other man. There was something familiar
about him. As the trio came into the light, Cery felt an old memory
spring to life.
“Regin,” he said. “Or is that Lord Regin now?”
“It is,” the man replied.
“It always was, Cery,” Sonea reminded him. “But calling novices
‘Lord’ or ‘Lady’ always feels a bit premature. Lord Regin and Lord
Rothen have volunteered to assist me in catching the rogue, which
could prove vital if I am unable to sneak away unnoticed from the
hospice at some point.”
“If luck is with us, you won’t have to slip away again,” Cery told
her. “So is Lord Rothen coming?”
She shook her head. “He didn’t see the point, if I was going.”
Cery watched Regin follow Sonea into the room. From what I
remember, Sonea didn’t like this man much when she was a novice. He
made things bad for her. But when Cery had met Regin during the
Ichani Invasion, the young man had volunteered to be the bait that
drew a Sachakan magician into Sonea and Akkarin’s trap. It had
been a brave move. Had the timing been wrong – and it nearly had
been from what Cery recalled – Regin would have had all magic and
life drained from him.
If he hadn’t known better, Cery would never have believed the
man he was examining had been the prank-playing, mischief-
making novice Sonea had complained about. Lord Regin’s face
appeared set into a permanent expression of seriousness. Though his
build had the healthy weight of someone who’d lived a privileged
life, the lines between his brows and around his mouth spoke of
worry and resignation. But there’s intelligence in those eyes, he noted.
He’s no less dangerous than he was as a novice, I’d wager. Still, Sonea
trusts him enough to recruit him for this. Then he looked at her and
saw the wariness in her posture as she glanced at her magician
helper. Or maybe she has no choice. I’d better ask her about him, as
soon as I have a chance to chat to her alone.
“So where is our rogue?” Sonea asked.
Cery moved to the window. “In the basement of the shoemaker
across the street.”
She peered outside. “How many entrances?”
“Two. Both watched.”
“We should split into two groups then. One magician in each.”
Cery nodded in agreement. “I’ll go with you in through the front
door. Gol can take Regin around to the back. We’ll meet in the
basement, where you’ll do whatever it is you do.” He looked at the
others. They nodded. “Any questions?” Glances were exchanged,
then heads shook. “Let’s go then.”
They led back down the stairs. Cery explained and demonstrated
a few signals that he and Gol would use as warnings or to signal a
retreat, then they stepped outside. It was full night now. The lamps
cast circles of light on the ground. Gol led Regin away toward the
back entrance. Cery and Sonea waited to give them time to get into
place, then walked across the road to the shoemaker’s shop.
Climbing the steps, they approached the front door. Cery produced
an oil dripper and quickly smeared the door hinges. Then he drew
picks from within his coat. Sonea said nothing, her face in shadow,
as he worked the lock open. I guess she could do this with magic –
possibly faster than I can. So why don’t I suggest it? Am I showing o ?
The lock clicked softly. Cery slowly turned the handle, bracing as
the latch sprung free. He pulled the door open, relieved when it
made only a soft groan. Sonea stepped inside, then waited as he
closed the door behind them.
It was dark in the shop and as his eyes adjusted he was able to
make out rows of shoes lined up on shelving, and a work table.
Opposite the door was a narrow staircase leading down, and
another leading up. According to his spies, the shoemaker was
asleep upstairs. And about to get a rude wake-up.
Sonea moved to the stairs and looked at the treads leading down.
She shook her head, then beckoned to Cery. As he approached, she
grabbed his arm and pulled him close. Staring at her in surprise, he
realised that in the dim light she looked like the young woman he’d
once helped hide from the Guild so many years ago. She wore the
same intent, worried expression.
Then he felt himself rising in the air and all thought of the past
ed from his mind. He looked down. Though he could feel
something beneath his feet, he couldn’t see it. Whatever it was, it
was carrying him and Sonea down the staircase.
I guess this means there’s no risk of creaking treads betraying us.
A sparsely furnished room appeared as they neared the oor of the
basement. Dazzling light lled the space as a glowing ball appeared
above Sonea’s head. Cery looked for the bed, found it, then felt a
surge of disappointment. It was unoccupied.
A door opened and they both spun about, then sighed as they saw
Regin and Gol enter the room. Both frowned as they saw the rogue
was nowhere in sight.
“Search,” Sonea said. “But carefully.”
They each chose a wall, examining the furniture, looking under
the bed, opening cupboards.
“This room isn’t being used,” Regin observed. “The clothes in this
cupboard are dusty.”
Cery nodded and nudged a basin with soiled cups, bowls and
cutlery in it. “And these dishes have been dirty for so long they’re
mouldy.”
“Aha!” Gol exclaimed quietly. All turned to see him gesturing at
the wall. A section of bricks sat at an angle to the rest, swivelling
aside as he pressed on one end. Behind was a dark space. Cery
crossed to it and sni ed at the air inside.
“The Thieves’ Road,” he said. “Or a passage to it.”
Sonea chuckled. “Not two entrances after all. I’m surprised you
didn’t check for subterranean ones.”
Cery shrugged. “It’s a new street. When the king demolishes the
old ones, he makes sure the Road goes too.”
“He wasn’t thorough enough this time,” she said. Coming closer,
she ran a hand over the brickwork. “Or perhaps he was. This is new
– hardly any dust or cobwebs on it. Should we see where it leads?”
“If you want to explore, go ahead,” Cery told her. “But this isn’t
my territory. I can’t enter without permission. If I trespass,” he
shrugged, “the Thief Hunter will have one less Thief to do in.”
“Does this passage suggest our rogue is working with the local
Thief?” Regin asked.
Sonea looked at Cery. “If she is the Thief Hunter, then I doubt it.
But if she’s not, then she’d have skills a Thief would nd very
useful.”
In other words, she thinks this proves that the rogue isn’t the Thief
Hunter, Cery thought.
Regin peered into the tunnel, his expression intent. He looked as if
he might move inside, but then he stepped back and straightened.
“I suspect she’s long gone. What do you recommend we do next,
Cery?” he asked.
Cery glanced at the magician in surprise. A magician asking him
his opinion was not something that happened often. “I agree that
you’re unlikely to nd her in the tunnels.” He reached out and
turned the bricks back into place. “If she doesn’t notice that we
invaded her room she might continue using it to access the tunnels.
We should make sure everything is exactly how we found it. I’ll put
a watch on this place and let you know if she returns.”
“And if she does notice?” Regin asked.
“Then we’ll have to hope another bit of luck leads us to her
again.”
Regin nodded, then looked at Sonea. She shrugged. “Not much
else we can do for now. If anyone can nd her again, Cery will.”
Cery felt a ush of pleasure, followed by a niggling anxiety that
she might be wrong. He had spotted the rogue by chance. It might
not be so easy to nd her again. The four of them moved around the
room quickly, making sure everything was in order, then left the
way they had come. Sonea relocked the front door with magic. They
slipped out the back way. Once in the main street again, they
exchanged glances but remained silent. The two magicians raised
hands in farewell before they walked away. Cery and Gol returned
to the empty shopkeeper’s house.
“Well, that was disappointing,” Gol said.
“Yes,” Cery agreed.
“Do you think the rogue will come back?”
“No. She’ll have had something set up to tell her if anyone came
visiting.”
“So what do we do next?”
“Watch and hope I’m wrong.” He looked around the room. “And
nd out when the owner of this place is due back. We don’t want to
scare him and his family half to death at nding a Thief in his
house.”
The slave master looked surprised to see Dannyl and Ashaki
Achati, before he threw himself to the ground at their feet. His
surprise was not because a powerful Sachakan and Kyralian
magician had come visiting. The estate had been expecting them, or
someone, to arrive.
“You came faster than we hoped,” the big man said when Achati
explained that they were looking for an escaped female slave and a
Kyralian man dressed as a slave.
“You have seen the pair I described?” Achati asked.
“Yes. Two nights ago. One of the slaves thought they were people
we’d been warned about, and when we came to question them they
had run away.”
“Did you search for them?”
“No.” The man bowed his head. “We were warned they were
magicians, and that only magicians could catch them.”
“Who gave you this warning?”
“The master, in a message.”
“When did the message arrive?”
“A day before the pair arrived here.”
Achati glanced at Dannyl, his eyebrows raised in disbelief. So if
Ashaki Tikako didn’t send the message, who did? Dannyl felt his heart
skip a beat. The Traitors. They must be very organised to get messages
like this out to the country estates so quickly.
“How long ago did you send your message warning your master of
their appearance here?”
“Two nights ago – straight after they disappeared.”
Achati turned to Dannyl. “If he is on his way he won’t arrive for
another day, even if he rides rather than taking a carriage. I’m
afraid we’ll have to wait. I don’t have the authority to read the
minds of another man’s slaves.”
“Do you have the authority to question them?” Dannyl asked.
The magician frowned. “There is no custom or law preventing me.
Or you.”
“Then let’s question them.”
Achati smiled. “We’ll do it your way? Why not?” He chuckled. “If
you do not mind, I would like to watch and learn from you. I would
not know what questions to ask that might trick a slave into
revealing more than he or she wanted to.”
“There really isn’t any trickery involved,” Dannyl assured him.
“Which do you want to question rst?”
“This man, and anyone who saw Lorkin and Tyvara. And most of
all, the slave who saw them and thought they might be the people
they’d been warned about.” Dannyl drew out his notebook and
looked at the slave master. “And I need a room – nothing fancy –
where I can question them alone without others overhearing.”
The man looked from Dannyl to Achati uncertainly.
“Arrange it,” Achati ordered. As the man hurried away, the
Sachakan magician turned to smile crookedly at Dannyl. “You really
must learn to phrase your requests as orders, Ambassador Dannyl.”
“You have the greater authority here,” Dannyl replied. “And I am
a foreigner. It would be rude of me to assume I could take control.”
Achati looked at him thoughtfully, then shrugged. “I suppose you
are right.”
The slave master returned and then led them into the building to a
small room that smelled of grain. The oor was covered in a ne
dust patterned with the sweeping grooves of a broom. Particles
hung in the beams of sunlight streaming in from a high window.
Two chairs had been placed under the window.
“Well, it’s de nitely not fancy,” Achati said, not hiding his
amusement.
“Where would you suggest we question them?” Dannyl asked.
Achati sighed. “I guess it would be presumptuous if we’d
questioned them in the Master’s Room, and guest rooms would have
made it obvious we aren’t in charge here. No, I suppose this is an
appropriate setting.” He moved to one of the chairs and sat down.
Dannyl took the other seat, then ordered the slave master to enter.
The man related how two slaves had arrived with an empty cart, the
male apparently new but lacking in muscle for a delivery slave, and
the woman there to show him the route. While they’d loaded the
cart one of the kitchen slaves had suggested to him that the pair
might be the people they’d been warned to watch out for. She
suggested drugging their food, as they would be less dangerous
asleep.
At the mention of drugged food, Dannyl had to hide his dismay.
Fortunately Lorkin and Tyvara hadn’t fallen for the trap. They’d
slipped away.
He then questioned the woman who had suspected the pair
weren’t who they said they were. As she entered the room, Dannyl
noted that her gaze was sharp, though she gave him only one quick
look before bowing her head and prostrating herself. He told her to
get up, and she kept her gaze lowered.
Her explanation matched the slave master’s, including the contents
of the message warning of two dangerous magicians posing as
slaves.
“What made you think they were the people you’d been warned
about?” Dannyl asked her.
“They were as described. A tall man with pale skin and a shorter
Sachakan female.”
Pale skin? Dannyl frowned. The slave master didn’t mention Lorkin’s
skin, and surely it would have been unusual enough for the man to
notice. Wait … didn’t the woman I healed at Tikako’s home say Lorkin’s
skin had been dyed?
Had the dye worn o , or was this woman feeding him the
information she thought he expected?
“Tall, short, male, female – none of these things would make them
stand out from other slaves surely. What made you notice they were
di erent?”
The woman’s gaze, xed on the oor, ickered. “The way they
moved and talked. Like they weren’t used to following orders.”
So not the pale skin. Dannyl paused, writing down her answer as
he considered what to ask next. Perhaps it was time to be more
direct.
“A slave I spoke to a few days ago thought the woman was a
Traitor and that they mean to kill the man she has abducted. Do you
think it likely they will kill him?”
The woman was very still as she answered.
“No.”
“Do you know of the Traitors?”
“Yes. Every slave does.”
“Why do you believe it is unlikely the Traitors intend to kill the
man?”
“Because if they wanted him dead they would have killed him, not
abducted him.”
“What do you think they intend to do with him then?”
She shook her head. “I am only a slave. I do not know.”
“What do other slaves think the Traitors will do with him?”
She paused and her head lifted slightly before bowing again, as if
she resisted the urge to look at him.
“I’ve heard some say,” she said slowly. “That the woman is a
murderer. That the Traitors want you to nd them.”
Dannyl felt a chill. Tyvara had killed a slave. What if that slave
had been the Traitor, not Tyvara?
“Who said this?” he asked.
“I … I can’t remember.”
“Are there any slaves who are more likely to say this sort of thing
than others?”
She paused then shook her head. “All slaves gossip.”
After a few more questions, he knew he would not get anything
more out of her. She’d said all she wanted to say, and if she was
withholding information he would not get it out of her voluntarily.
He sent her away.
I’d wager she does know more. And then there’s the description of
Lorkin’s pale skin. She wanted me to be sure Lorkin was here. Which
makes sense if this rumour that the Traitors want me to nd Tyvara and
Lorkin is true.
But it could be a decoy. Still, the slave he’d helped at Tikako’s
home had spoken the truth. Tyvara and Lorkin had come to his
country estate.
What if the Traitors did want him to nd the pair? Then they’ll
make sure we nd them. Though I can’t imagine Tyvara will let us
capture her without a ght. And we’ll have to be prepared for any
reaction from Lorkin. It’s possible she’s convinced him to accompany her
– perhaps even seduced him – and he’ll resist being rescued.
He wanted to believe Lorkin was more sensible than that, but he
had heard the gossip in the Guild that the young man had a
weakness for pretty, smart women. Being the son of Black Magician
Sonea and the late High Lord Akkarin didn’t mean the young man
had any of his parents’ wisdom, either. Those characteristics could
only come with experience. With making mistakes and choices, and
learning from the consequences.
I just hope this isn’t a serious mistake, and that the consequences are
the kind he can learn from, not ones that will lead to me spending the
rest of my life in Sachaka for fear of what Sonea might do to me if I ever
return to the Guild.
Lorkin would have thought that a male and female slave walking
along a country road in the middle of the night would raise
suspicion, but the few slaves they had passed had barely glanced at
them. A carriage had overtaken them once, and Tyvara had hissed
something about it probably containing a magician or Ashaki, but
all she’d had him do was scamper o the road and keep his gaze
lowered.
“If anyone asks, we’ve been sent out to work at Ashaki Catika’s
estate,” she’d told him. “We’re both house slaves. We’re travelling at
night because he wants us there by tomorrow evening and that
means walking night and day.”
“Ashaki Catika is known for that sort of cruelty?”
“All Sachakan magicians are.”
“Surely there are one or two good magicians.”
“There are some who treat their slaves better than others, but
ultimately enslaving another person is cruel, so I wouldn’t call any
of them good. If they were good, they’d free their slaves and pay
those willing to stay and work for them.” She glanced at him. “As
Kyralians do.”
“Not all Kyralians are kind to their servants,” Lorkin told her.
“At least those servants can leave and nd a new employer.”
“They can, but it is not as easy as it sounds. Servant positions are
in high demand and a servant who quits may nd it hard to get
work elsewhere. Households tend to hire servants from the same
family over servants they don’t know. Of course, a servant can try
other work, like a trade, but they will be competing with families
who have practised that trade for generations.”
“Do you think slavery is better then?”
“No. De nitely not. I am only saying the alternative isn’t easier.
How well do Traitors treat their servants?”
“We are all servants. Just as we are all Traitors,” Tyvara
explained. “The term isn’t like ‘Ashaki’ or ‘Lord’. It is a word for a
people.”
“But not a race?”
“No. We are Sachakans, though we don’t often call ourselves that.”
“So even magicians do the tasks of servants? They clean and
cook?”
“Yes and no.” She grimaced then. “At rst that was how it was
supposed to be. We would all do the same work. A Traitor might
clean dirty dishes one moment and then vote on important
decisions, like which crops to plant, the next. But it didn’t work.
Some bad decisions were made because people who were not smart
or educated enough to understand the consequences chose badly.
“We started a range of tests designed to nd out what a person’s
talent was and to develop it, so the best person would end up taking
on the tasks that required their skills. Though that meant we weren’t
all doing the same things any more, it was still better than slavery.
So long as the tasks required for maintaining our home and feeding
our people were met, nobody was forced to do a certain job, or
prevented from doing something they were talented at, because of
their family status or class.”
“Sounds wonderful,” Lorkin remarked.
She shrugged. “It works most of the time, but like all systems it’s
not perfect. There are some magicians who would rather spend their
time complaining and manipulating others than wasting their magic
on tilling the elds or heating kilns.”
“Most Guild magicians would agree. But we do work for the
people in other ways. Maintaining the port. Building bridges and
other structures. Defending the country. Healing the sick and in—”
The look she cast him had stopped the words in his throat. It
began as a savage glare, then turned into a troubled frown, and then
she turned away.
“What is it?” he asked.
“Someone’s coming,” she said, looking into the shadowed road
ahead. “Anyone we pass could be a Traitor. We shouldn’t be talking.
Someone might overhear us and realise who we are.”
The approaching gure turned out to be another slave. From then
on Tyvara would not speak, telling him to be quiet if he attempted
to start another conversation. As the sky began to lighten, she began
scanning the surrounding area as she had done the previous
morning, eventually moving o the road to where some thin trees
barely screened a eld wall.
They’d hidden among some dense, prickly bushes the previous
day. These trees weren’t going to provide the same cover, however.
Tyvara was staring at the ground. Lorkin felt a vibration, then heard
a strange tearing sound followed by something between a thump
and a popping noise. A cloud of dust rose up beyond the wall and
the air lled with the smell of grit and dirt.
Before their feet a hole appeared.
“In you go,” Tyvara said, gesturing toward the hole.
“In there?” Lorkin crouched and peered into the darkness. “Are
you hoping to bury me alive?”
“No, foolish Kyralian,” she snapped. “I’m trying to hide us both.
Get inside before someone sees us.”
He put his hands on either side of the hole and let his legs dangle
inside. There was no oor that he could reach. The prospect of
falling into darkness didn’t appeal, so he created a spark of light
within the space. It illuminated a hollow space under the ground,
the curved oor not far below his feet. He let himself drop, then
crouched to avoid scraping his head on the “ceiling” as he moved
further inside.
The hollow was globe-shaped, mainly situated below the wall.
Two holes showed circles of brightening sky above the eld, one
that he had entered and another that he guessed had been the exit
for the dirt. The inside of the hollow was no doubt restrained from
falling in and burying him by Tyvara’s magic.
She dropped and slid in beside him, immediately folding herself
down into a sitting position facing him. The space was small for two
people, and her legs brushed up against his. He hoped the ash of
interest this stirred in him didn’t show somehow. Her eyes ickered
up to meet his, then she sighed and looked away.
“Sorry for snapping at you. It can’t be easy for you to trust me.”
He smiled ruefully. The trouble is, I want to trust her. I should be
questioning every move she makes, especially after what she told me the
other night. Well, I would, but when I get her talking something happens
and she goes all silent on me again. She was watching him, her
expression apologetic. Maybe I should try again.
“That’s ne. But it’s not the rst time I’ve annoyed you tonight.
What did I say, when we were discussing servants and the Traitors
at the beginning of the night, that bothered you?” he asked.
Her eyes widened, then her mouth thinned into a line of
reluctance. He thought she wasn’t going to answer, but she shook
her head.
“I’ll have to explain eventually.” She grimaced and looked down at
her knees. “Many years ago my people noticed that one of the
Ichani that roam about the wasteland had a strange slave. A pale
man, possibly a Kyralian.” Her gaze ickered up to meet his, then
away. “Your father.”
Lorkin felt a chill run across his skin. Though he had heard the
story before, his mother had always been reluctant to talk about this
part of his father’s life.
“They watched for a long time and eventually realised that the
slave was a Guild magician,” Tyvara continued. “This was unusual,
as you may know already, as Sachakans don’t tolerate slaves
knowing magic. If a slave develops powers naturally they will kill
him, or her. Enslaving a foreign magician – especially a Guild
magician – was extraordinary and dangerous. But this was no
ordinary Ichani. He was cunning and ambitious.
“As my people watched, they guessed that your father did not
know higher magic. Then, one day, the daughter of the leader of my
people fell terribly ill and soon it was clear she was dying. Our
leader had heard of the Guild’s skills in healing with magic. We’ve
tried for many years to discover the secret for ourselves, without
success. So our leader sent one of us out to meet your father and
make an o er.” Tyvara’s face darkened. “She would teach him
higher magic in exchange for Healing magic.”
She looked up at him. Lorkin stared back at her. His mother had
never mentioned that his father had agreed to exchange anything
for black magic, nor had anybody else in the Guild.
“And?” he prompted.
“He agreed.”
“He can’t – couldn’t – do that!” Lorkin blurted.
Tyvara frowned. “Why not?”
“It’s … it’s a decision only the Higher Magicians can make. And
then probably only with the approval of the king. To give such
valuable knowledge to another race … a people not of the Allied
Lands … is too risky. And there would have to be something given
in exchange.”
“Higher magic,” she reminded him.
“Which they would never have accepted in exchange. It is…” He
caught himself. Revealing that black magic was forbidden would
reveal the Guild’s greatest weakness. “It was not his decision to
make.”
Tyvara’s mouth set in a disapproving line. “Yet he agreed to the
o er,” she said. “He agreed to come to our home and teach us
Healing – something he said that could not be taught in a moment,
as higher magic can be. So he was taught higher magic and he used
it to kill his master. Then he disappeared, returning to Imardin and
breaking his promise. Our leader’s daughter died.”
Lorkin found he could not meet her accusing gaze. He looked at
the ground and picked up a handful of dirt, letting it fall between
his ngers.
“I can see why your people are angry with him,” he said lamely.
She drew in a deep breath and looked away. “Not all of them. One
of my people travelled to Imardin later, when it was clear the
brother of your father’s former master was preparing to invade
Kyralia. She discovered that this Ichani had been sending spies into
Imardin for some time, and that your father was killing them o in
secret. It could be that your father returned home because he
discovered the threat from his master’s brother.”
“Or he assumed you understood he had to persuade the Guild to
allow him to teach you Healing before he could return.”
She looked at him. “Do you think that is true?”
Lorkin shook his head. “No. He could not have told them about
you without revealing that he had …” – he had learned black magic –
“… he had been enslaved here.”
“He broke his promise out of pride?” Her tone was disapproving,
though not as much as he would have expected. Perhaps she
understood why his father had been reluctant to tell his tale.
“I doubt that was the only reason,” he said. “He did reveal the
truth when it was needed. Or most of the truth, as it turns out,” he
added.
“Well,” she said, shrugging. “Whatever the reason, he didn’t keep
his promise. Some of my people – the faction I mentioned the other
night – want you punished for it.” She smiled crookedly as he
looked at her in horror. “Which is why Riva was sent to kill you,
against our leader’s orders. But the majority of us hold to the
principle that we are better than our barbaric Sachakan cousins. We
do not punish the child for the crimes of the parent.”
Lorkin sighed with relief. “I’m glad to hear that.”
She smiled. “Instead we give them a chance to make amends.”
“But what can I do? I am a mere Ambassador’s assistant. I don’t
even know higher magic.”
Her expression became serious. “You could teach us Healing.”
They stared at each other in silence. Then she looked down.
“But, as you just pointed out, you haven’t the authority to give us
that knowledge.”
He shook his head. “Is there anything else I can do?” he asked
apologetically.
She frowned, her eyes xed on the dirt wall as she considered.
“No.” Her mouth twisted into a grimace. “This isn’t good. We have
kept the other faction from gaining popularity by promoting the
idea that you could give us what your father promised. When my
people realise that you can’t give them Healing they will be
disappointed. And angry.” She bowed her head. “Perhaps it would
be better if I didn’t take you there. Perhaps I should send you back
home.”
“Don’t you need me there to help prove that Riva tried to kill me
against orders?” he asked.
“It would help my case.”
“Would going to Sanctuary to speak on your behalf improve my
standing among your people?”
She frowned and looked at him. “Yes … but …”
As Lorkin considered that, he felt con icting emotions. I was
hoping to see her home and learn about her people – and nd out what
they know about stones with magical qualities. What will happen to her
if I don’t go there? She killed one of her own people to save me. Though
Riva was disobeying orders, they may still punish Tyvara. Perhaps even
execute her. It doesn’t seem right to run away home when she might die
for saving my life. And I don’t much like my chances of getting home –
on my own or with Dannyl’s help – with black-magic-wielding Traitors
all over Sachaka trying to kill me.
“Then I will travel with you to Sanctuary.”
Her eyes widened and she gazed at him. “Are you sure?”
He shrugged. “I am an Ambassador’s assistant. Perhaps not an
actual Ambassador, but it is still my role to assist in establishing and
maintaining friendly relations between Kyralia and Sachaka. If it
turns out that there’s a part of Sachaka we’ve been failing to
establish friendly relations with, it is my duty to ensure that part is
not ignored or neglected.”
She was staring at him now, mouth open, though whether from
surprise or disbelief or because he’d sounded like a complete idiot
he wasn’t sure.
“And since my predecessor made such a bad impression on your
people it is even more important that I do what I can to improve
their view of the Guild and Kyralians,” he continued. Then he felt a
giddying rush of inspiration. “And discuss the possibility of
negotiating an exchange of magical knowledge, this time with the
appropriate parties and processes involved.”
Tyvara’s mouth snapped shut and, for a moment, she regarded him
with an intensity that he could only meet with a hopeful and foolish
smile. Then she threw back her head and laughed. The sound
echoed in the hole and she smacked a hand over her mouth.
“You are mad,” she said, when her shoulders had stopped shaking.
“Fortunately for you it’s a madness I like. If you truly wish to risk
your life coming to Sanctuary, whether to defend me or try to
persuade my people to give you something in exchange for what
they already feel they are owed … then I sel shly feel I shouldn’t
try to dissuade you.”
He shrugged. “It’s the least I can do. For you saving my life. And
for your people saving my father’s. Will you take me?”
“Yes.” She smiled grimly. “And if you help me then I will do all I
can to help you survive when you get there.”
“That would be appreciated, too.”
She looked as if she would say something else, but then looked
away. “Well, we have to get there rst. It’s a long walk. Better get
some sleep.”
He watched her curl up, tucking one arm under her head; then he
lay down. It was impossible to nd a comfortable position on the
curved oor, and eventually he copied her, curling up on his side
with his back to her. He could feel the heat from her body. No, don’t
think about that, or you’ll never get to sleep.
“Could you turn the light out?” she murmured.
“Can I dim it instead?” The prospect of being underground in
complete darkness did not appeal at all.
“If you must.”
He reduced the spark of light until it barely illuminated the two of
them. Then he listened to the sound of her breathing, waiting for
the slow, deep rhythm of sleep. He knew he was far too conscious of
her body so close to his to fall asleep himself. But he was very tired
…
Before long he had drifted into strange dreams, in which he
walked along a road of dirt so soft he had to wade through it, while
Tyvara, being lighter and more nimble, barely stirred the soil and
was getting further and further ahead …
CHAPTER 20
ALLIES AND ENEMIES
I n the street below, on the other side, a man stopped and looked
up at the window. Cery resisted the urge to shrink back out of
sight. It was too late to avoid being seen, and the motion would
con rm he should not be there.
“Uh, oh,” Gol said. “That’s the shopkeeper from next door.”
“Looks like he’s worked out his neighbour has some uninvited
guests.”
The man looked away, down at the ground. After a moment his
shoulders straightened and he strode across the street toward the
shop. A loud rapping followed.
Gol rose. “I’ll get rid of him for you.”
“No.” Cery stood up and stretched. “I’ll take care of it. Stay here
and keep watch. What’s his name, again?”
“Tevan.”
As Gol sat down again, he muttered something about it all being a
waste of time. He’s probably right, Cery thought. The rogue won’t be
coming back. But we may as well watch because we’ll look right fools if
we’re wrong and she does come back. And we have no other clues to
follow.
He walked out of the room and entered the stairway, descending
to the ground oor. Pushing through the door to the storekeeper’s
shop, Cery looked around with interest. They’d been using the back
door, so he hadn’t been in here before. The room was full of ne
ceramic bowls. He blinked and looked closer, then chuckled. They
were all toilet basins, as nely painted and sculpted as vases or
dinner ware.
Through the frosted glass door he could see the next-door
shopkeeper’s hunched silhouette. The man had probably promised
to keep an eye on his neighbour’s shop and house, and felt obliged
to confront these trespassers. He was probably worried that he
would regret it, too.
The front door was locked and there was no key in it or in any
obvious hiding place close by. Cery was amused to nd he had to
pick the lock. Once unlocked, he opened the door, smiled at the
shopkeeper and e ected the sort of cultured accent merchants liked
to use to impress rich customers.
“The shop is closed, I’m sorry.” Cery pretended to give the man a
second look. “But you know that, don’t you? You’re … Tevan? You
run the shop next door, correct?”
The man was of average height and carried the excess weight of a
middle-aged man who hadn’t been forced to skip a meal in a long
time – if ever.
“Who are you and what are you doing in Wendel’s house?” he
demanded.
“I am Wendel’s cousin, Delin, and I am borrowing his house for
the week.”
“Wendel doesn’t have a cousin. He has no family. He told me.”
“Second cousin, by marriage,” Cery explained. “He didn’t tell you I
was staying here?” He frowned in mock puzzlement. “I suppose it
was decided very late.”
“He didn’t. It’s not something he’s likely to neglect to tell me,
either.” Tevan narrowed his eyes, then took a step backwards. “I’m
calling on the Guard. If you’re lying you’d better get out while you
have the chance.” The man turned and took a step away.
“The Guard’s like to get you and Wendel more rub than I ever
will,” Cery said, dropping the accent and letting a little slum drawl
colour his words. “Crawling all over this place breaking things
looking for proof we were here, then saying you made it up. Let’s
sort this out ourselves.”
Tevan had stopped, and now he looked at Cery with a worried
frown.
“I only need be here for a week, maybe less,” Cery told him.
“Wendel won’t see a sign I’ve been here. I’d pay him rent if he was
about, but since he’s not here …” He reached into his coat, allowing
the hilt of a knife to ash into sight brie y, and drew out a cap of
gold coins he kept there for moments like these.
The man’s eyes widened. “A week?” he repeated. He looked
trans xed by all the gold.
“Or less.”
Teran’s gaze rose to Cery’s. “Rent’s high around here.”
“Your house would be cheaper,” Cery replied.
Tevan swallowed. He looked at the coins again, then nodded.
“What’s your going rate?”
“Half a gold per day,” Cery replied. He slipped the cap back into
his coat. “You’ll nd ’em dropped by your back door after I’m
gone.”
The man nodded, but his mouth was set in a thin line of disbelief.
Still, he didn’t voice his doubts. Instead he looked across the road.
“You’re watching something,” he said. “Or looking for someone.
Anything I can help with?”
“Hoping to get rid of me sooner?” Cery asked. A look of confusion
entered the man’s eyes. No, perhaps he thinks he’s found another way
to turn a pro t. “Well, if you’ve seen anything suspicious going on
over there …”
Tevan frowned. “There’s a foreign woman keeps odd hours. The
shoemaker says she rents his basement. We’ve never worked out
what she does for a living. Too old and ugly to be whoring around,
I’d have thought. My wife’s seen her at the market on Freeday
mornings with the spice and herb sellers. We think maybe she …” –
he leaned closer and lowered his voice – “unburdens young women
of unwanted situations.”
Cery felt his heart skip, but kept his expression blank. Tevan
looked at him expectantly.
“Not my line of interest,” Cery said, shrugging. “Anything else?”
The man shook his head. “Supposed to be a clean, honest area,
this one. If anything is going on it’s well hidden.” He paused. “Is
something going on?”
Cery shook his head. “Nothing you’d want to know about.”
“Right.” Tevan stepped away again. “Good luck then.”
“Good night.”
The man nodded, then turned away and headed for the shop next
door. Cery closed the door and locked it, then jogged upstairs,
taking the stairs two at a time. At the top he paused to catch his
breath. His heart hammered in his chest.
“What’s wrong?” Gol asked.
“Nothing. Not … as young … as I used to be,” Cery panted. He
returned to his chair. “I should get out more often. Any sign of our
rogue?”
“No.”
“Anyone pay much attention to the neighbourly exchange
downstairs?”
“Not much.”
“Good. One of us needs to go to the Freeday market tomorrow. To
the spice sellers.”
“Oh?”
“Our rogue apparently visits them regularly.”
“That’s Skellin’s territory.”
Cery cursed. Gol was right. While some Thieves did not mind
others doing a little snooping around in their territory without
permission – so long as the snooping wasn’t on their operations –
others de nitely did. Cery would wager that Skellin was the latter
kind.
“I doubt he’d deny you permission,” Gol said.
“Yes, but to get permission I’d have to explain what I’m doing.
And then he’d know I didn’t seek his help in nding someone I
thought might be the Thief Hunter, when I said I would.”
“Just tell him the truth: you’re not sure it is, and you didn’t want
to bother him until you had proof.”
“If he thinks there’s a chance I’m right, he’ll want to help us search
for her,” Cery pointed out.
“We could do with the help,” Gol replied.
Cery sighed. “We could. But what will Sonea think of us involving
another Thief?”
Gol gave him a serious look. “She won’t care, so long as the rogue
is caught.”
“What will Skellin think of having to work with the Guild?”
“He won’t have any choice.” Gol smiled. “And from what you said
about his interest in magicians, he might be thrilled at the chance.”
Cery regarded his friend thoughtfully. “You want me to ask for
Skellin’s help, don’t you?”
Gol shrugged. “If this woman is the Thief Hunter, I want her
caught quick. The sooner she’s gone the safer you’ll be.”
“And you.”
The big man spread his hands. “Is it wrong to want that?”
“Hmph.” Cery looked outside and saw the rst of the lamp-lighters
stride into sight. It was growing dark already. “Not at all. Once
Skellin learns the Thief Hunter might be a magician, he’ll realise he
has no choice but to work with the Guild. He’s not going to be able
to catch or kill her himself.”
“So you’ll go see him?”
Cery sighed. “I guess I have to.”
Since Achati had not told Ashaki Tikako of his intention to visit his
country estate, as it would have meant pointing out the humiliating
fact that the man had not read his slave’s mind properly, he did not
want to impose further by staying there for the night. Instead, he
and Dannyl travelled further down the road to another estate,
owned by an elderly Ashaki, and requested a meal and beds in the
name of the king.
The old man and his wife were clearly unused to company and
played host and hostess reluctantly. But custom dictated that they
could not refuse the king’s representative. Achati took pity on them,
eating sparingly and quickly, and the couple were happy to oblige
when he indicated that both he and Dannyl were tired and would
appreciate an early night.
Once settled in the guest rooms, they did not go to bed
straightaway, but sat and discussed what they had learned.
“If the Traitors want us to nd Lorkin, we’ll nd him,” Achati said.
“You believe they have that much power and in uence?”
The Sachakan grimaced as he nodded. “Unfortunately, yes. They
have evaded us for centuries. Many previous kings have tried to
ush them out, or nd their base, but the Traitors have only grown
better at what they do. King Amakira has said to me we could be
better o leaving them alone, as they may grow weaker if they have
nothing to strive against.”
Dannyl chuckled. “He may be right, but I doubt it.”
“Why is that?”
“Without con ict killing them o and taking up their time, they
will raise families. They may grow weaker in ghting skills, but
greater in numbers.”
Achati frowned thoughtfully. “Eventually there will be too many
mouths to feed. They will starve.” He smiled. “So maybe the king is
right after all.”
“Only if the Traitors remain hidden.”
“You think they’ll be forced to come out? To come begging for
food?”
“Or they’ll choose to reveal themselves in other ways. How strong
is your army?”
Achati snorted derisively. “Most likely a hundred times bigger and
stronger than theirs. We know their base is in the mountains, where
the land is harsh and infertile. They could not feed a population to
match the rest of the country, so I doubt their army is the same size
or larger than ours.”
Dannyl nodded in agreement. “Which is why they use cunning,
secretive methods. I wonder … do you think they could overthrow
the country merely by assassinating and manipulating the right
people?”
Achati’s expression became serious. “It is possible, but if they
could have done it before now, surely they would have.”
“The perfect opportunity may not have presented itself yet. It may
require some new and extraordinary factor.”
Achati’s eyebrows rose. “Like the chance to abduct the son of a
powerful Guild magician?”
“Do you think that would be extraordinary enough?”
“No.” He shook his head and smiled. “Manipulating Kyralia and
Sachaka into a war would be too risky. What if Kyralia won? What
if we resisted their manipulations, joined forces and attacked the
Traitors together? The Guild may prove better at hunting them than
we are.” He paused. “Which reminds me. Has the Guild responded
to the news of Lorkin’s abduction yet?”
“No,” Dannyl looked away. I’m not going to be able to put this o
any longer. Achati will start wondering why they’re taking so long. “That
reminds me – I should check on their progress.”
“I’ll leave you to it.” Achati rose. “It’s late and I should get some
rest. Tell me what they say in the morning.”
“I will.”
As the door to the Sachakan’s room closed, Dannyl reached into
his robe and drew out Administrator Osen’s blood ring. He stared at
it, running through his mind all the ways he’d considered phrasing
the bad news, and choosing what he hoped was the best.
Then he slipped on the ring.
As Sonea opened the door to her rooms, she was surprised to nd
Administrator Osen standing outside with one hand raised ready to
knock. The startled look on his face faded and he straightened.
“Black Magician Sonea,” he said. “I must speak with you.”
“It’s lucky we caught you before you left for the hospices,” another
voice added.
She turned to see Rothen standing behind and to one side of the
Administrator. At once she felt her stomach sink and her heart start
to race. There’s that look again. Something’s happened to Lorkin …
“Come in,” she said, stepping back and beckoning impatiently.
Osen strode inside, followed by Rothen. She closed the door and
turned to stare at the Administrator expectantly. He regarded her
soberly.
“I must inform you that your son has …” Osen paused and
frowned. “I’m not sure what to call it. It appears Lorkin has been
abducted.”
Sonea’s legs lost all strength and she felt herself sway a little.
Rothen took a step toward her, but she gestured for him to stop. She
drew in a deep breath, forced herself to stand rmly and turned
back to Osen.
“Abducted?” she repeated.
“Yes. By a young female magician posing as a slave. Ambassador
Dannyl believes there is a possibility your son went willingly, but
he’s not certain of it.”
“Ah.” A traitorous and seductive relief trickled through Sonea.
Women. Why is it always women with Lorkin? She felt her heart slow
to a calmer rhythm. “So this is more of a matter of social
impropriety than impending and certain death?”
“We certainly hope so. But it is more complicated than that. It
seems we are not the only people with an underground, secret and
not entirely lawful society, and they may be involved.”
“Criminals?”
Osen shook his head. “Ambassador Dannyl described them as
rebels. They call themselves the Traitors. It is rumoured that they
are all women.” Osen’s eyebrows rose, hinting that he thought this
unlikely. “They are also magicians – black magicians. The woman
who abducted Lorkin is one. She killed another slave the same night
and drained her of power. Dannyl is not sure whether the abductor
is the Traitor and the slave just got in her way, or the dead slave
was a Traitor and the abductor is not. Either way, the Traitors have
indicated that they want her and Lorkin found, and apparently they
have such in uence that this makes the likeliness of that happening
very good.”
Sonea took a moment to absorb that. “So when was Lorkin taken
away?”
“Three nights ago.”
Sonea’s heart stopped. “Three nights! Why wasn’t I told
immediately!”
“You are being told immediately.” Osen smiled wryly. “When I
impressed upon the new Ambassador that he only contact me in the
gravest of emergencies, he took me far too seriously. He expected to
nd Lorkin quickly, and only told me of the situation tonight.”
“I’ll kill him,” she muttered, moving away to pace the room. “If
this woman is a black magician – do they have any other kind over
there? – how is Dannyl going to force her to give Lorkin back?”
“He has the assistance of the Sachakan king’s representative.”
“What if she doesn’t want to be found? Who knows what she’ll do
to survive? Threaten to kill Lorkin?” Sonea stopped, suddenly out of
breath. She felt as if her lungs weren’t expelling as much air as she
was drawing in. Her head was starting to spin. Grabbing the back of
a chair, she forced herself to breathe slowly. When her head had
cleared she turned to Osen. “I have to go there. I have to be there
when they nd him.”
Osen’s expression had been open and sympathetic. Now it closed
in and became hard.
“You know you can’t do that,” he said.
She narrowed her eyes at him, feeling a deep fury rising. “Who
would dare stop me?”
“The Guild must have two black magicians present at all times,”
he reminded her. “The king will never allow you to leave Imardin,
let alone Kyralia.”
“This is my son!” she snapped.
“And the Sachakan king might not appreciate us sending – or
allowing – you into his country,” Osen continued, “making a
politically dangerous situation worse, and implying his people can’t
sort something like this out for themselves.”
“And what if they ca—”
“Lorkin isn’t stupid, Sonea,” Rothen interrupted quietly. “And
neither is Dannyl.”
She stared at him, struggling to hold back a surge of hurt and
anger that he was arguing against her. But if Rothen doesn’t think I
should go …
“I don’t believe Lorkin would have gone with this woman if there
hadn’t been a good reason.”
“What if that reason was he had no choice?” she argued.
“Then we must trust Dannyl. You know he would have told us
straightaway if the situation was truly grim. If Lorkin is a hostage,
then you will not be able to do more for him than Dannyl. Dannyl
has experience at negotiation. He has the help of the Sachakans.”
His voice hardened. “If you barge in there you could make the
situation much worse, not just for Lorkin but for Kyralia and
Sachaka.”
Suddenly she felt weak and drained. Helpless. What is the use of all
this power if I can’t use it to save my own son?
But perhaps he doesn’t need saving, a faint voice said somewhere in
the back of her mind.
Osen sighed. “I’m afraid I must forbid you to leave, Black Magician
Sonea. Or to speak of this to anyone but myself, the king, High Lord
Balkan and Lord Rothen.”
“Not even Akkarin’s family?”
He shook his head. “Not even them. As Lorkin’s mother you have a
right to know what is happening, and I will keep you informed of
the situation. I will be discussing ways that we may assist Lord
Dannyl with High Lord Balkan tonight, including sending someone
to help him. If we do that, I will let you know as many details as it
is safe to reveal.”
You had better, she thought. “I will look forward to regular
reports,” she said sti y.
He gave her a long, thoughtful look. “Good night, Black Magician
Sonea.”
She followed him to the door, opening it with magic. Before he
stepped out, he nodded politely to her. Then he was gone and she
shut the door on the sound of his footsteps striding away down the
corridor.
She turned to Rothen.
“I’m going anyway,” she told him, then headed for her bedroom. A
small trunk sat upon the clothes cabinet. She lifted it with magic
and set it on the oor.
“You won’t be let back in a second time,” Rothen told her, from
the doorway.
She moved to the cupboard and opened it. It was full of black
robes. “I don’t care. I’ll nd Lorkin, then we’ll go travelling. It’ll be
their loss, not mine.”
“I didn’t mean the Guild. I mean the country. The Allied Lands.”
“I know. There are lands beyond the Allied ones, you know.”
“Yes. But while the Guild can train another black magician to
replace you, you will not nd another Guild to replace it. You may
not care about that, but will Lorkin?”
She was still staring at the robes. They were not what a magician
ought to wear when casting o the shackles of the Guild. She wasn’t
sure what a magician ought to wear when rebelling and storming
out of the country, only that these were de nitely not appropriate.
But they were all she had.
I can’t believe I’m worrying about clothing right now!
“You need to nd the rogue, Sonea.”
“Regin can nd her.”
“Cery doesn’t trust him.”
“I don’t blame him,” she muttered. “Cery will have to make do.”
Rothen sighed. “Sonea.” His voice now had a fatherly, stern tone.
She crossed her arms, put on her best don’t-mess-with-me-I’ve-
faced-worse-than-you-and-won stare, which made novices inch and
magicians reconsider their words, and turned to face him. “What?”
As always, he remained una ected.
“You know you can’t go,” he told her. “You know you will more
likely make Lorkin’s situation worse than better, and that after this
is over he’ll need a safe, secure Guild to return to – with his mother in
it.”
She stared at him, then cursed.
“Why are you always right, Rothen?”
He shrugged. “I’m older and smarter than you. Now, you and I
need to discuss and make less obvious and destructive plans. For a
start, I think we should send someone to Sachaka to act on our
behalf.”
“Who?”
He smiled. “I have a few people in mind. Come sit down and I’ll
tell you.”
CHAPTER 21
WELCOME ASSISTANCE
A fter one night at the old Ashaki’s home, Achati and Dannyl had
travelled north-west for half of a day, then stopped at the estate
of Achati’s cousin, Ashaki Tanucha. Though not much younger
than the previous host, Tanucha was clearly a far wealthier and
more sociable man. His much younger wife, in her middle years,
only appeared at dinner and was otherwise busy looking after their
seven children, including ve boys.
“Seven! I know it’s more a city man’s viewpoint, but it seems a
touch irresponsible,” Achati said to Dannyl quietly when they
retired to the guest rooms after dinner. “Only one can inherit. He
must nd occupation for the rest. The daughters will be married as
best can be arranged, of course. But the sons …” He sighed.
“Landless and dependent on their brother, as will be their sons – if
they can attract wives at all.” He shook his head. “This is how
Ichani come to be.”
“They rebel against their brothers?”
“Against the whole country. It is better that younger sons are not
trained in magic, but it is rare for a parent who loves his child to
withhold that knowledge, since it means the younger son will have
such low status.”
“Younger sons are more likely to become magicians in Kyralia,”
Dannyl told him. “Magicians are not supposed to involve themselves
in politics, and it’s considered better if the son destined to become
the head of the family is the one with political in uence.”
Achati nodded thoughtfully. “I think I like your way better. It
gives power to both older and younger sons.”
They spent the next day riding around Tanucha’s estate, and the
evening in eating and talking. Afterwards Achati and Dannyl chatted
late into the night. The next day they slept late, then explored
Tanucha’s library, which was disappointingly small and neglected.
Though the rest was welcome, Dannyl could not relax. When they
retired to the guest rooms for the second night he asked Achati
when they would be moving on.
“That depends on the Traitors, doesn’t it?” Achati replied as he
reclined on the pillows in the central room.
“Surely we’re not going to wait around for them to deliver Lorkin
and Tyvara to us?” Dannyl said, sitting down on one of the stools.
He could not get used to lying about on the oor as the Sachakans
did.
“Why not? If we keep moving they may not know where to nd
us. Or we may end up travelling in the wrong direction – away from
those who are bringing them to us.”
Dannyl frowned. “I’m not sure why, but I can’t picture these
Traitors turning up at the front gate of Tanucha’s estate with Lorkin
and Tyvara in chains. They wouldn’t reveal themselves like that.”
“Then how do you think they’ll do it?”
Dannyl considered. “If I were them … I’d lead us to Lorkin and
Tyvara. I’d leave us clues or directions – as they have already – so
that we will eventually cross paths with the pair.”
“Have they left us any clues or directions lately?”
“No,” Dannyl admitted. “But they haven’t told us to stay put,
either.”
Achati laughed. “I am growing very fond of you, Ambassador
Dannyl. You have a unique mind.” He turned to one of his slaves, a
handsome young man who attended to most of his needs, while the
other slave’s role appeared to be to do heavy work and drive the
carriage. “Get us some more water, Varn.” The slave picked up a
pitcher and hurried away.
“Of course, telling us that they want us to nd Lorkin could still be
a decoy,” Dannyl said.
“So if it was, then where would we go next?”
Dannyl shook his head and sighed. “I don’t know. If the Traitors
did want the girl and Lorkin to evade us, where would they take
them?”
“To their mountain home.”
“And which direction has the pair been heading?”
“The mountains.”
“Presumably they are ahead of us.” Dannyl looked up at Achati.
“That is the direction I would go.”
Achati nodded, then raised an eyebrow in warning. “We don’t
know where their home is,” he reminded Dannyl. “Only that it is in
the mountains.”
“I haven’t forgotten that. Have you ever used trackers?”
“Occasionally. When we had a con rmed Traitor to follow.”
“And it failed because?”
“The tracks always stop.” Achati shrugged. “The Traitors are not
fools. They know how to erase signs of their passing. Which is not
hard when your land is mostly bare rock and you can levitate.”
Dannyl frowned, then shook his head. “If the Traitors wanted us to
stop and stay put, or change direction, they’d have let us know.”
“This whole journey and all the clues we’ve followed could have
been a ruse,” Achati pointed out. “Designed to keep us busy and
heading in the wrong direction.”
“Then it doesn’t matter if we keep going. They’ve already made
fools of us. But if there’s a chance they haven’t, and we’re on the
right track, then I’m willing to risk being made a slightly bigger fool
by continuing toward the mountains. It’s worth it, for the chance
we’ll nd Lorkin.”
Achati regarded Dannyl thoughtfully, then nodded. The slave
returned and handed him the pitcher. “Then we’ll leave. Will the
morning be soon enough?” He re lled his goblet but paused to wait
for Dannyl’s answer.
Dannyl looked at the man, noting signs of reluctance. I shouldn’t
push him too far, he thought. He nodded. “Of course. But early in the
morning would be best.”
Achati sighed, nodded, then drained his goblet. “I’ll send a slave to
inform Tanucha we’ll be moving on, and request some supplies for
the journey. There are fewer estates out by the mountains, and they
don’t tend to be that prosperous. We’ll also need some magical
support. I’ll contact the king and ask him to send some locals to help
us.” With a grunt, he rose to his feet. “Don’t wait for me. Go to bed.
This could take some time.”
Magical support. Contacting the king. Dannyl felt a twinge of
apprehension. He really does think these Traitors are dangerous.
“Ashaki Achati?” Dannyl said.
The man turned to look back at him. “Yes?”
Dannyl smiled. “Thank you.”
Achati’s frown disappeared and his eyes warmed with good
humour. “I think I could get to like Kyralian ideas of manners.”
Then he turned and disappeared through the door to his room.
Lorkin opened his eyes. The sky was streaked with orange clouds.
He frowned. He’d been dreaming, but he couldn’t remember
anything of the dream. Something had woken him. He had that
unpleasant, disorienting feeling of being disturbed. Of being
wrenched awake before he was ready.
He felt something move against him, and his heart was suddenly
pounding.
Lifting his head he saw that Tyvara had fallen asleep. Sitting up
against the wall of the old ruin, she had sagged sideways against a
protruding stone, and bent her right leg instinctively to avoid
toppling sideways. Her knee had come to rest on his arm.
Her skin was wonderfully warm – a stark contrast to the cold
ground beneath him and the growing chill of approaching night.
Though Sachaka was warm during the day, the evenings could be
surprisingly cold.
What should I do? If I move she’ll wake up. But she’s supposed to be
keeping watch, and it’s nearly time for us to head o anyway. She
needed the sleep, though. She’d been taking longer shifts keeping
watch at night, despite him arguing that she could trust him to
share the burden. He didn’t have the heart to tell her he could Heal
away the weariness. It would be insensitive, considering what his
father had promised the Traitors, then failed to deliver.
The cold air told him that she had also let fall the magical shield
protecting them, so he put up one of his own, then warmed the air
inside it. Keeping still so he didn’t disturb her, he watched her
sleeping. The dark circles under her eyes and the little frown
creasing her forehead bothered him. But being able to look at her
closely without disturbing or embarrassing her … he could
appreciate the feminine curve of her jaw and the exotic tilt of her
eyes, the curve of her lips …
Which twitched, and he quickly looked away.
He felt her hastily throw up a shield as she woke up and realised
she’d dropped hers, so he drew his own in to surround himself.
Listening to her draw in a deep breath, then yawn, he considered
the ruins they were hiding within. Though Tyvara had been here
before, she didn’t know anything about their history. High on a
rocky hill, they overlooked the intersection of the road they had
been following where it met another. As the sun had risen, just after
they’d arrived, he’d been able to pick out details of the mountains,
which before had been only a hazy, uneven line of blue-grey at the
horizon. Below them was mostly level farmland, broken here and
there by plantations of trees or game forests, and criss-crossed by
low walls.
“How far away are we?” he had asked.
“Three or four more nights walking to the foothills, then several
more to climb into the mountains.”
Now he looked at the area surrounding the hill, checking for signs
of life.
“Mind if I have a look around?” he asked as Tyvara rose to her feet
and stretched.
She looked up at the sky, which was now a deep scarlet, but the
night was not quite dark enough for continuing their trek. “Go
ahead. Just keep out of sight of the road.”
“I will.”
They’d sheltered within an open square of walls. He rose and
headed for one of the gaps, intending to have a closer look at the
outside of the building.
A woman stepped into the gap.
He skidded to a halt. The woman was dressed as a slave, but her
demeanour was all wrong. She was smiling at him, but the smile
was not friendly. She took a step toward him, her eyes narrowing.
Instinctively, he strengthened his shield.
His instinct proved correct. The woman’s nose wrinkled with
concentration, and his shield vibrated violently as magic battered it.
The air between them shimmered. He backed away.
The woman’s stare was cold and intent. He had no doubt she
meant to kill him. Fear set his heart pounding. He felt a growing
urge to run. Which would be sensible, he thought. She’s got to be a
Traitor, which means she’s a black magician, which means she’s a lot
stronger than me.
But before he had even nished that thought, Tyvara stepped past
him. The woman’s gaze shifted to her. He felt a giddy rush of relief.
Tyvara stopped a step in front of him and he felt her shield envelop
his own. Though the battering stopped, he kept his shield strong
within hers, in case her own faltered.
“Stop this, Rasha,” Tyvara said.
“Only if you do,” the woman replied.
“Do you swear you will not strike at me or Lorkin?”
“I swear I will not strike you. But he,” the woman’s gaze shifted
back to him, “must die.”
Lorkin shivered. But he also noted that the woman had stopped
striking at Tyvara.
“The queen ordered that he was not to be killed.”
“She has no right to tell us we cannot have our revenge,” Rasha
hissed.
“Ishira was the rst to die.”
The woman’s eyes ashed with anger. “First or last, what does it
matter?”
“She was my playmate. Do you think I didn’t miss her? Do you
think I didn’t grieve?”
“You don’t know what it’s like to lose a child!” the woman shouted.
“No,” Tyvara replied, an edge to her voice. “But I would consider
the queen an example of how to live with the loss, not those who
would murder someone else’s child for their parent’s mistakes or
crimes.”
Rasha stared at Tyvara, her face a mask of hatred. “Not everyone
can be so forgiving. Not of that. And not of you murdering one of
your own people.” The woman’s eyes gleamed. “You’re wasting your
strength protecting him. Let me have him.”
“Once you kill him, what will you do with me?” Tyvara sounded
remarkably calm, Lorkin noted. But she stood braced as if she
expected another attack any moment. She’s trying to keep the woman
talking. Well, I hope she is. She could also be about to start bartering my
life for her own.
“You’re coming back to Sanctuary with me. All Traitors need to
know that the queen would rather one of our own died than the son
of the man who killed her daughter.”
“Actually, the queen would rather people obeyed her orders. Then
nobody would get killed,” a high voice said. “It’s quite a reasonable
order, and good for everybody.”
Rasha stepped to the side and turned in one movement. Another
woman dressed as a slave stood within the gap, leaning against the
wall in a deliberately nonchalant pose.
“Chari,” Tyvara said, relief and warmth in her voice.
The newcomer gave them all a cheerful smile, then stepped into
the building with all the poise of a young Kyralian woman making a
grand entrance at a ball or party.
“I have fresh, shiny orders from the queen,” she told them. “Lord
Lorkin is not to be harmed. Tyvara is to be brought to Sanctuary to
be put on trial for the murder of Riva.” She turned to Rasha. “Since I
outrank you, this little task falls to me. You had better run along,
before your master realises you’re gone and sends a whipping party
after you.”
Rasha stared at Chari for a moment, then she hissed and stalked
through the gap in the wall. The snap and crack of the woman
pushing through the spiny bushes covering the hill could be clearly
heard.
Chari turned to regard Tyvara. “You’re in so much trouble.”
Tyvara smiled. “Thanks for stepping in. How’d you know where
we were?”
The young woman shrugged. “I didn’t. I was keeping an eye out
for you, of course, but I didn’t think you’d come here. It’s the most
obvious hiding place in this area. What were you thinking?”
Tyvara shrugged. “I don’t know.” She rubbed her face, her
weariness suddenly plain to see. “We’d done so well … I thought
maybe people were assuming we wouldn’t head for Sanctuary.”
Chari shook her head. “It’s just as well I was keeping an eye on
Rasha. She’s head watcher at the estate next to mine and she’s been
sweating on catching you. When I heard she’d gathered together a
group and was heading out to get you I slipped away and followed.”
“A group?” Tyvara frowned. “Where are the others?”
“Fortunately for you, she told them to wait so she could go on
ahead and knock o your new friend here.” Chari glanced at Lorkin
and smiled. “I got to them rst and told them to go home.”
“I outrank you,” Lorkin recalled her saying to Rasha. She’s obviously
a fairly powerful Traitor. And if they have ranks then they aren’t as
equal as Tyvara says.
“Well … thank you for that.” Tyvara paused. “So what are you
going to do with us?”
Chari did not answer. She looked down, pursed her lips and
walked a few steps closer. She stopped a few steps away, then
looked at Tyvara searchingly. “Is it true?”
“Yes.”
Chari nodded and sighed. “Riva was a troublemaker. If anyone
was going to give you reason, she would.”
Tyvara shook her head. “If there had been any other way …”
“Well, good for you for not denying it. What are your plans?”
“To go home and sort this out.”
Chari’s gaze shifted to Lorkin and moved from his head to his feet
and back again. “What about him?”
Lorkin decided to ignore that he was being discussed as if he
wasn’t there. He inclined his head politely. “Honoured to meet you,
Chari of the Traitors.”
The woman grinned and walked over to face him. “I like him.
Honoured to meet you, too, Lorkin of the Guild.”
“He has o ered to return with me, to speak in my defence at the
trial.” Tyvara’s words were quiet.
Chari’s eyebrows rose. “And are you wanting to go with her?” she
asked of him.
“Yes.”
Her expression became both approving and appraising. “You’re a
brave man. Are you going to give us what your father didn’t?”
“We’ll discuss that when we get there,” Tyvara replied before he
could respond.
The young woman chuckled. “I’m sure you will. Of course, that’s
not what’s supposed to happen,” she told him. “You’re supposed to
be returned to Arvice. We’re certainly not meant to bring you back
to our secret home. I’ll have to get permission for that.”
“How long will that take?” he asked.
Chari considered. “Six or seven days. We can shorten that by
meeting Speaker Savara at the tanners’ huts.” She glanced at Tyvara.
“Savara was Tyvara’s mentor – and mine – and is one of our leaders.
If you still want to come to Sanctuary, you’ll have to talk her into
taking you.”
“How would I best do that?”
Chari shrugged.
“With your usual charm and enthusiasm,” Tyvara told him. “Don’t
make any promises, though. My people will regard them with
suspicion, if they believe them at all. You only need to mention you
are willing to consider making amends for your father’s betrayal,
not specify how.”
He nodded. “I can do that.”
Tyvara smiled. “I’m looking forward to watching you try.”
“As am I,” Chari said. She looked down at his shoes. “How are
your feet?”
“Well used.”
“Fancy a cart ride? We have a load of feed headed for one of the
outer estates tomorrow. I’m sure there’s room for two more slaves.”
Lorkin looked at Tyvara. “We can trust her?”
She nodded. “Chari is an old friend of mine. We trained together.”
He smiled at Chari and inclined his head. “Then I accept. In fact, it
sounds like an o er too good to refuse.”
“Then don’t.” Chari smiled brightly. “I can o er you more
comfortable beds at my estate than a bit of dirt in an old ruin. And,”
she leaned toward Lorkin and sni ed, “a bath.”
Lorkin looked toward Tyvara. She was frowning.
“What’s wrong?” he asked.
She shook her head. “Nothing.” Sighing, she looked at Chari. “Are
you sure Lorkin is safe at your estate?”
The young woman grinned. “The master’s a sweet old drunk. I
make all the decisions there, including which slaves he buys. There’s
not one slave there I didn’t approve of, and the few times Speaker
Sneaky has tried to get one of her girls in I’ve found them
somewhere else to be.”
Tyvara shook her head slowly. “You’re going to be a very scary
woman if you ever decide to take a place at the Table.”
“You can bet on it.” Chari grinned. “So you’d better stay on my
good side. And you’ll have a better chance of that if you have that
bath. Come on. Let’s get home before the master misses me.”
“She wouldn’t ask to meet you if there wasn’t good reason,” Gol said
as he hurried after Cery.
“Is that supposed to make me feel better?” Cery retorted.
“Well … all I’m saying is she’s a sensible girl.”
“I’d much rather she was not sensible with no good reason to see
me.” Cery scowled. “If she’s sensible and has a good reason then
there’s a better chance something bad has happened.”
Gol sighed and said nothing more. Cery wove past boxes and tubs
of rotting food in the alley. At least I know that Anyi is still alive, he
thought. Gol had occasionally tried to nd her, and Cery had been
pleased that he’d failed – and tried to tell himself it was because
she’d succeeded in hiding rather than because her corpse had never
been found or recognised.
Near the end of the alleyway he stopped and hammered on a door.
After a short pause, the door swung inward and a man with a
scarred face ushered them inside. A familiar woman stepped out of a
side door to meet them.
“Donia,” Cery said, managing a half-smile. “How’s business?”
“The usual,” she said, the corner of her mouth lifting into a wry
smile. “Good to see you again. I’ve got the rooms set the way you
like. She’s waiting up there.”
“Thanks.”
He and Gol climbed the stairs. Worry made him edgy, and he
couldn’t help glancing through doorways and around corners for
signs of ambush. Though Cery did not think Donia would betray
him willingly, he never discounted the chance that someone would
remember they had been friends in their youth, and set a trap for
him in her bolhouse. Or spy on him. He always had Donia empty
the top- oor rooms either side of and below the one he held
meetings in, so nobody could eavesdrop.
Reaching the door of the same room he had met Anyi in last time,
he was amused to see her sitting in the exact position he had been
in during the previous meeting. Keeping his expression neutral, he
followed Gol inside. The big man looked around the room, then
closed the door. Cery looked closely at his daughter.
There were dark circles under her eyes and she appeared to be
even thinner, but her gaze was sharp and un inching.
“Anyi,” he said. “I’m glad to see you’ve kept out of trouble.”
The corner of her mouth twitched. “It’s good to see you’re still
alive, too. Any luck catching my brothers’ murderer?”
He felt a familiar wrench of grief. “Yes and no.”
“Which means what?”
Cery suppressed a sigh. Her mother had disliked evasive answers,
too.
“I’ve been tracking someone, but I won’t be sure if it is the right
someone until I catch them.”
She pursed her lips, then nodded. “Why have you let brazier
houses open in Northside?”
He blinked in surprise. “I haven’t.”
“You don’t know about them?” Her eyebrows rose and her
attention shifted to Gol. “He doesn’t know?”
“No.” Cery glanced at Gol. “But we do now.”
“You’ll shut them down?”
“Of course.”
She frowned. “But you won’t do it yourself, will you? Not in
person.”
He shrugged. “Probably not. Why do you ask?”
“One opened next to where I was staying. It’s why I’m not staying
there now. Nasty, nasty people. I heard them talking to the previous
owner. The walls are pretty thin so it wasn’t hard to listen in.” Her
eyes narrowed. “They told the man they were going to take his
house and shop. They said if he told anyone they’d do things to him
and his family. There was a woman with a strange accent – nothing
I’ve ever heard before. She said something and then the bootmaker
yelled. When his wife got home after they’d gone, I heard him
telling her what had happened. He said they’d hurt him with
magic.” Anyi looked at Cery intently. “Do you think that’s possible,
or did they trick him?”
Cery stared back at her. If this is the rogue … if it is the Thief Hunter
… is she worming her way closer to Skellin by working for his rot-
sellers? “A strange accent,” he repeated.
“Yes.”
“Did you get a look at her?”
“No. But there have been rumours of rogue magicians in the city
for years. It kind of makes sense if they’re foreigners. Magicians
from countries outside the Allied Lands aren’t going to be part of the
Guild.” She paused, then shrugged. “Of course, she could’ve been
faking it.”
Cery nodded approvingly. “You were right to leave. Better to
assume she has magic and get out of there. Have you got another
hiding place?”
She scowled. “No. I had a few, but they’ve all been spoiled in one
way or another.” She looked up at him. “You’re doing okay, from
the look of it.”
“I’m not sure how much of that is because of what I’ve done, or
sheer luck,” he admitted.
“Still, with the money and contacts you have, you must have a
better chance than me.”
Cery shrugged. “They do help.”
“They do, do they? Well, how about I come and stay with you,
then? Because hiding doesn’t earn me any money, and I’ve used up
all mine – as well as my contacts.”
As Cery opened his mouth to protest, she leapt to her feet.
“Don’t go telling me I’d be safer away from you. Nobody but you
and Gol know we’re related and I have no intention of making it
public gossip. I’m not going to be with you all the time because I’m
your daughter.” She straightened and put her hands on her hips.
“I’m going to be there as your bodyguard.”
Gol made a choking noise.
“Anyi—” Cery began.
“Face it, you need one. Gol’s getting old and slow. You need
someone young. Someone you can trust as much as him.”
Gol’s choking became a spluttering.
“Youth and trustworthiness aren’t all that a bodyguard’s gotta be,”
Cery pointed out.
She smiled and crossed her arms. “You don’t think I can ght? I
can ght. I’ve even had some training. I’ll prove it.”
Cery bit back the sceptical remark he would normally have made.
She is my daughter. We haven’t exchanged this many words in years. I’ll
gain nothing by dismissing her. And … perhaps she does have a little of
her father’s talent.
“Well, then,” he said. “How about you do that? Show me how old
and slow Gol is.”
He nearly laughed aloud at the expression on his bodyguard’s face.
Gol’s look of hurt and dismay changed to wariness as Anyi turned to
face him and dropped into a crouch. There was a glint of metal in
one hand. Cery hadn’t seen her reach for the knife. He noted the
way she held it and nodded in approval.
This could be interesting.
“Don’t actually kill him,” he told her.
Gol had recovered from his surprise now, and was drawing closer
to Anyi with the careful, well-balanced steps that Cery knew so well.
He slowly drew out a knife. The big man might not be fast on his
feet, but he was as solid as a wall and knew how to use an
adversary’s momentum and weight against him. Or her.
Anyi was edging closer as well, but Cery was pleased to see she
wasn’t rushing in. She was circling Gol though, and that wasn’t
good. A bodyguard ought to keep him- or herself between an
attacker and the person they were supposed to be protecting. I’ll
have to teach her that.
Cery caught himself and frowned. Will I? Should I even keep her
near me, let alone put her in a position where she is more likely to be
attacked? I should give her money and send her away.
Somehow he knew she would not be content with that. Whether
he sent her away or let her stay with him, she would want to be
doing something. And she has no place to hide. How can I send her
away?
But she was tenacious. If he sent her back out into the city –
especially if he gave her some money – she would nd new places to
conceal herself. Or she will decide she can’t stand being cooped up any
more and throw all caution to the wind.
A urry of movement drew his attention back to the ght. Anyi
had attacked Gol, he noted. Again, not the best move for a
bodyguard. Gol had neatly dodged her knife, caught her arm and
used her lunge to propel and twist her to the oor behind him. She
gave a yelp of protest and pain as he held her arm behind her back,
stopping her from rising.
Cery walked forward and prised the knife out of her hand, then he
stepped back.
“Let her up.”
Gol released her and backed away. He met Cery’s gaze and nodded
once. “She’s fast, but she has some bad habits. We’ll have to retrain
her.”
Cery frowned at the man. He’s already decided I’m going to keep her!
Rising to her feet, Anyi narrowed her eyes at Gol, but said
nothing. She glanced at Cery, then looked at the oor.
“I’ll learn,” she said.
“You have a lot to learn,” Cery told her.
“So you’ll take me on as a bodyguard?”
He paused before answering. “I’ll consider it, once you’ve been
trained right, and if I think you’re good enough. Either way, you’re
working for me now, and that means you must do what I tell you.
No arguments. You obey orders, even if you don’t know why.”
She nodded. “That’s fair.”
He walked over to her and handed back the knife. “And Gol’s not
old. He’s close to the same age as me.”
Anyi’s eyebrows rose. “If you think that means he’s not old, then
you really do need a new bodyguard.”
CHAPTER 23
NEW HELPERS
The farm cart was big and moved slowly. It was piled high with
bales of stock feed, its load strapped down securely with many
ropes. Four gorin hauled it – the rst Lorkin had seen of the big
animals in Sachaka. The driver was a short, silent male slave who
occupied the only seat on the vehicle.
The other three passengers rode in a cave within the bales. Gaps
between the bales that formed the roof allowed some air to get into
the narrow space, but the walls were tightly packed. Three small
packs were stowed at one end, which Lorkin assumed were full of
food and supplies for the journey into the mountains. Chari and
Tyvara were sitting either side of him on a seat of bales running
along the gap, which meant he had to turn his back on Chari to look
at Tyvara, and vice versa.
Chari nudged his arm with her elbow. “More comfortable than
walking, right?”
“De nitely. Was this your idea?”
She waved a hand dismissively. “No, we’ve been doing this for
centuries. Got to move slaves about somehow.”
He frowned. “Won’t any Traitors seeing a cart like this suspect
there’s someone travelling inside, then?”
Chari shrugged. “Yes, but unless they’ve got a good reason, they
won’t approach us. Especially not during the day. Slaves don’t stop
other estate’s carts. None of their business. If an Ashaki saw them
doing it, they’d think it odd and investigate.” She frowned. “Keeping
you hidden has the added bene t of preventing confrontations like
the one you had with Rasha. I have the authority to stop Traitors
like her – don’t worry, not all of us want you dead – but dealing
with it would delay us. If other Traitors do suspect you’re in here,
they’ll rightly assume it wouldn’t be without the knowledge of other
Traitors. This is not something you could ever arrange on your
own.”
“And let’s not forget the people searching for Lorkin,” Tyvara
added. “Ambassador Dannyl and the king’s representative, Ashaki
Achati.”
“Those two?” Chari waved a hand dismissively. “We’ve arranged
for them to be sent o track, next time they go snooping around an
estate.” She smiled. “They could ride past us and never know we’re
here.” She looked up at the bales above them. “Though, it can get a
bit stu y on hot days. Good thing you two had a bath last night,
eh?”
Lorkin nodded and looked down at himself. The last of the dye
had washed o his skin. He patted the clean slave wrap. “Thank you
for the new clothes, too.”
She looked at him and grimaced. “We’ll have you out of them and
into proper clothes soon.”
“I never thought I’d say it, but I miss my Guild robes,” he
lamented.
“Why didn’t you like them before?”
“Because every magician wears them. It gets a bit boring. The only
change you get is when you graduate from a novice to a magician –
unless you become one of the Higher Magicians, and most of them
only wear a di erent colour sash.”
“A novice is a student, right? How long do they stay novices for?”
“All new entrants to the Guild are novices. They spend about ve
years in the University before they graduate.”
“So what sorts of magic do you learn at the University?”
“At rst a range of things,” he told her. “Magic, of course, but also
non-magical studies like history and strategy. Most of us turn out to
be better at something, and eventually we get to choose which of
the three disciplines we’ll follow: Healing, Warrior Studies or
Alchemy.”
“What did you choose?”
“Alchemy. You can tell which of us are Alchemists because we
wear purple. Healers wear green and Warriors wear red.”
Chari frowned. “What do Alchemists do?”
“Everything that Healers and Warriors don’t do,” Lorkin explained.
“Mainly it involves magic but sometimes not. Ambassador Dannyl,
the magician I came here with and am supposed to be assisting, is a
historian, which doesn’t involve magic at all.”
“Can you choose two disciplines? Be an Alchemist and a Warrior –
or an Alchemist and a Healer? Or—”
“We already know this, Chari,” Tyvara interrupted.
Lorkin turned to regard her. She looked at him apologetically.
“We’re taught about the Guild along with the culture of many other
lands during our training,” she told him.
“Yes, but I didn’t pay much attention at the time,” Chari replied.
“It’s so much more interesting when it comes from an actual
Kyralian magician.”
Lorkin turned back to nd her looking at him expectantly. “You
were saying?” she prompted.
He shook his head. “No, we can’t choose more than one discipline,
but we all get a basic education in the three.”
“So you can Heal?”
“Yes, but not with the skill and knowledge of a fully trained
Healer.”
Chari opened her mouth to ask another question, but Tyvara cut in
before she could speak.
“You can ask questions in return,” she told Lorkin. “Chari may not
be able to answer some of them, but if you let her do all the asking
she’ll interrogate you all the way to the mountains.”
He looked at Tyvara in surprise. Throughout their journey from
Arvice she had been reluctant to answer his questions. At his stare,
her lips pressed into a thin line and she shifted her gaze to Chari. He
turned to look at the other woman. Chari was regarding Tyvara with
amusement.
“Well, then,” she said, turning to Lorkin. “What would you like to
know?”
Though there were hundreds of things he wanted to know about
the Traitors and their secret home, and Chari seemed much more
receptive to questions, he suspected that Tyvara’s habit of secrecy
would soon have her stopping him and Chari talking at all. Was
there anything he could safely ask about the Traitors, when so much
information about them was secret?
I de nitely shouldn’t ask how they block mind-reading. Though I still
suspect it involves a process similar to making a blood gem. Suddenly he
remembered the references to a storestone in the records he’d read
for Dannyl.
Was there any risk in mentioning the storestone? It wasn’t as if he
knew where to nd it, or how to make one, so he wouldn’t be
putting a weapon into the Traitor’s hands if he talked about it.
“Remember how I said that Ambassador Dannyl is a historian?” he
asked.
Chari nodded.
“He’s writing a history of magic. We’ve both done a bit of research
here in Sachaka. Dannyl is more interested in lling the gaps of our
history – how the wasteland was created, or when and how Imardin
was destroyed and rebuilt. I’m more interested in how old kinds of
magic worked.”
He paused to gauge their reaction. Chari was watching him
intently, while Tyvara regarded him with one eyebrow raised,
which he took to indicate interest and a little surprise.
“When I was taking notes for Dannyl I found a reference to an
object called a storestone,” he continued, “that was kept in Arvice
after the Sachakan War. It was clearly a thing of great power. It was
lost a few years after the war – apparently stolen by a Kyralian
magician. Do you know anything about it?”
Chari looked at Tyvara, who shrugged and shook her head.
“I don’t know about that one, but I know a bit about storestones,”
Chari told him. “Anyone would guess from the name that they are
stones that store power. Which would be very useful. But they’re
rare. So rare that individual stones were once given names and their
histories recorded as if they were people. All the ones we’ve heard
of were destroyed long ago. It’s probably over a thousand years,
probably more, since the last one existed. If this storestone existed
just after the Sachakan War, it is the most recent record of one. So
you didn’t know about it until recently?”
He shook his head.
She looked thoughtful. “Then either the thief hid it much too
e ectively, or it was broken. You said Imardin was destroyed and
rebuilt?”
“Yes.”
“Breaking a storestone is supposed to be dangerous. It releases the
power within it in an uncontrolled way. Maybe that’s what
destroyed Imardin.”
Lorkin frowned. “I suppose that’s possible.” He considered the
idea. I’ve always doubted that the Mad Apprentice could have been
powerful enough to cause that much devastation, but what if he had the
storestone?
“We could ask the record keepers at Sanctuary,” Chari said.
“About older storestones, that is. I doubt they know anything about
Imardin’s history.”
“Queen Zarala might,” Tyvara said.
Chari’s eyebrows rose. “I suppose if she lets him into the city,
she’ll want to check him out.”
“She will.” Tyvara eyed him with a strange, smug amusement.
“De nitely.”
Chari chuckled and turned to Lorkin. “Are you sure you want to
come to Sanctuary?”
“Of course.”
“Tyvara has told you that it’s run by women, hasn’t she? Men can’t
go bossing people about. Even magicians like you.”
He shrugged. “I have no desire to boss anyone about.”
She smiled. “You’re such a reasonable man. I always thought
Kyralians were arrogant and dishonest. I guess you can’t all be the
same. Tyvara wouldn’t be taking you there if you were. And it’s so
sweet of you to come all this way and risk your life for Tyvara.”
“Well, she did save my life.”
“That’s true.” Chari reached out and patted his arm lightly.
“Honourable and good-looking. I reckon you’ll do well. My people
will change their minds about Kyralians once they meet you.”
“Yes, in no time we’ll be exchanging gifts and swapping recipes,”
Tyvara muttered dryly.
Lorkin turned to look at her. She met his eyes brie y, then looked
away, frowning. She’s not happy about something, he thought. His
heart skipped a beat. Does she think Chari is going to betray us?
“So tell me more about the Guild,” Chari said behind him.
Tyvara rolled her eyes and sighed. Relief and amusement replaced
apprehension. She was simply irritated by Chari’s chatter. Well, I
hope that’s it. I wish I could talk to her. They’d not had a private
moment together since Chari had found them.
He felt a stab of frustration. I wish I could talk to many people.
Mother and Dannyl for a start. He thought of the blood gem still
hidden in the spine of his notebook, tucked into his clothing. He’d
had no chance to use it without revealing it to Tyvara. And now
Chari was with them, there would be even less opportunity to use it.
Perhaps he should have let Tyvara know he had it. But it is my only
link to the Guild. If I’m going to chance losing it, I must wait until the
risk is unavoidable. And if I’m going to negotiate any sort of trade or
alliance between the Guild and Traitors, I’ll need a way to communicate
between them.
In the meantime, he might as well do his best to establish good
relations between his country and the Traitors. Turning back to
Chari, he smiled.
“More about the Guild? What would you like to know?”
CHAPTER 24
THE ALLIES YOU NEED
S unny House was living up to its name. Warm sunlight bathed the
garden and ruins, setting the more colourful owers glowing in a
sea of green vegetation. Skellin was waiting for Cery in the same
shelter they had met in last time, his guard standing nearby.
Gol stopped, as far from the shelter as the other guard was. Cery
walked on, resisting the urge to turn and look behind, but not
because of his friend and bodyguard. As always, he’d arranged for
some of his people to follow and watch, ready to help if he needed
them, or warn of approaching danger. He called them his “shadow
guard.” Only this time there was a new face among the familiar
ones.
Anyi. She was learning fast. She was quick and agile, and a bit too
reckless at times. It had turned out though that the risks she took
were more often out of ignorance than foolishness, and she was
taking in his and Gol’s instruction with reassuring enthusiasm and
intelligence. Ordering her to follow and watch was the safest way to
let her feel she was doing the job she wanted, without risking
revealing her identity to anyone or putting her in real danger.
Yet the streets they’d passed through were never completely safe,
and he couldn’t help worrying that some stupid thug would try
something with her, and it would lead to a ght.
As Cery reached the shelter, Skellin rose to greet him.
“What do you have to tell me, friend?” the other Thief asked.
“Some news I heard the other day.”
The story of the rot-seller and his foreign, female helper brought a
frown to the man’s exotic face. Cery lied about the source of the
information, saying that it was a washerwoman who’d overheard
the conversation. Better to keep Anyi’s name out of this.
“Hmm,” was all Skellin said. He looked displeased. Perhaps even
angry.
“I also informed my friend that you would like to meet her,” Cery
added. “She agreed to it.”
Skellin’s gaze lightened and he straightened his shoulders. “Did
she?” He rubbed his hands together and smiled. “Well, that’s
something to look forward to. As for your rather bad news … I will
look into it.” He sighed. “It does not look good, does it? First she is
seen in my territory, now she is working for my rot-sellers.”
“Unless they’re someone else’s rot-sellers.”
The other Thief’s mouth twitched into a crooked smile. “Which
would make it even worse news. I’ll let you know what I nd out.”
His voice had gained a harder, almost threatening edge. That’s more
like what I’d expect from a man with his power and trade, Cery
thought.
Cery nodded. They spoke polite farewells, parted and headed in
di erent directions. After all the e ort I have to put into getting here,
these meetings always feel too brief. But sitting and chatting to Skellin
doesn’t appeal either. I’m not sure why. Probably because I’m always
waiting for him to try getting me to sell rot for him.
Gol joined him and they set o into the city. Sunny House was
several streets behind when a gure stepped out of a doorway and
walked toward them. Cery tensed, then relaxed as he recognised
Anyi, then tensed again as he realised she was disobeying his orders.
She wasn’t supposed to approach him until they were back at the
hideout.
Maybe she needs to warn me of something.
Anyi nodded to him politely, her expression serious, then fell into
step beside him.
“So,” she said, her voice low. “You got a good reason to be
working with the King of Rot?”
Cery glanced at her, amused. “Who calls him that?”
“Half the city,” she replied.
“Which half?”
“The lower half.”
“I’m from the lower half, so why haven’t I heard of it?”
She shrugged. “You’re old and out of touch. So. Have you got a
good reason?”
“Yes.”
They walked in silence for several paces.
“Because I hate that man,” she added suddenly.
“Oh? Why is that?”
“We had no rot here until he came along.”
Cery grimaced wryly. “If he hadn’t brought it, someone else would
have.”
She scowled. “Why don’t you sell it?”
“I have standards. Pretty low standards, but that’s to be expected.
I’m a Thief.”
“There’s a big di erence between what he does and what you do.”
“You have no idea what I do.”
“That’s true.” She frowned. “And I’m not in a hurry to nd out.
But … why don’t you deal in rot?”
He shrugged. “Rot makes people unreliable. If they lose interest in
making a living they don’t want loans. If they can’t work they can’t
pay back the loans. If they’re broke, they can’t buy things. If they
die they’re no good to anyone. Rot isn’t good for business – unless it
is the business. And if it was no worse than bol I’d be lining up to
trade in it.”
Anyi nodded, then let out a long sigh. “It sure does make people
unreliable. There was … I had a friend. We worked together, were
going to … do things together. My friend helped me out when you
told me I had to hide.
“But we started to run out of money a lot faster than we should
have. I knew my friend took rot, only enough to relax and sleep.
When it ran out, my friend disappeared o to get more. I went next
door to talk to the neighbour’s wife, so I was out when my friend
returned. With two thugs. I heard them talking. My so-called ‘friend’
was going to sell me out.”
Cery cursed. “Did he know why you were hiding?”
“Yes.”
“So the thugs know, too.”
“I guess so.”
Cery glanced at Gol.
“They probably wanted to sell Anyi on to someone better
positioned to use her against you,” the big man said. “Her boyfriend
will have only wanted fast money.”
“So there are two thugs out there who know too much,” Cery said.
He turned to Anyi. “Would you like this former friend killed?”
She looked at him sharply. “No.”
He smiled. “Would you mind if I had the thugs killed?”
Her eyes widened, then narrowed. “No.”
“Good, because I would have them killed whether you minded or
not, but I’d rather be certain we got the right ones, and that’ll be
easier if you can pick them for us.”
She nodded. Then she looked at him sidelong. “You know, nobody
uses that old slum slang any more. ‘Pick’ is so old-fashioned.”
“I’m an old-fashioned kind of man.” They turned into a wider
street, which was full of vehicles and people and noise. He lowered
his voice. “Just so you know, the reason for today’s meeting is to
nd the person who you were hiding from.”
Anyi paused in scanning the street to glance at him. “Guess that’s
a good reason to be talking to the King of Rot. Can I watch when
you kill the murderer?”
“No.”
“Why not?”
“Because I won’t be killing her. I doubt I could if I tried.”
“It’s a woman? Why can’t you kill her?” She sent him another
quick look, this time full of confusion. He chuckled.
“Don’t worry. I’ll explain when the time is right.”
I bet Regin wishes he was here, Sonea thought as the young female
Healer was led to the front of the Guildhall. The woman wasn’t one
of the Healers who worked at the hospices, so Sonea did not know
her well. Lady Vinara had explained that she was from one of the
city’s less powerful Houses – a younger daughter sent to the Guild in
order to gain prestige, and Healing for the family without charge.
The Healer had been overheard relating how she had used magic
for a smuggler, and, when the information had been reported, she’d
been summoned to a Hearing by the Higher Magicians. Rumours
claimed that the smuggler was her cousin. It was the rst time
anyone had been accused of breaking the new rule against
magicians working for criminals.
It’s going to be interesting to see how the Higher Magicians deal with
this. Regin will be itching to know what is decided. I expect he’ll pay me
a visit tonight, to nd out the details.
She realised the prospect didn’t bother her that much. Though she
could never completely relax in Regin’s company, he seemed
genuinely concerned about the new rule and how it a ected the
welfare of magicians. And, of course, he was keen to nd the rogue.
But he didn’t drone on about it, like some magicians might, and
never outstayed his welcome.
Because he’s a man who’d prefer to take action than whinge about
something.
She stilled in surprise. Had she just found something admirable in
Regin’s character? Surely not.
Of the rogue, there had been no news. Most nights Sonea worked
at the same hospice in Northside, knowing this would make it easier
for a messenger from Cery to nd her. But no messages had come
since he’d visited personally to tell her he was enlisting the help of
another Thief.
Below her, Administrator Osen turned to the Higher Magicians.
“Lady Talie is charged with breaking the new rule forbidding a
magician to be involved in or bene t from criminal activity,” he
told them. “We are to decide if this is true and, if so, how she is to
be punished.” He turned to look at a pair of magicians standing to
one side. “I call on Lord Jawen to speak as witness.”
One of the pair, a middle-aged Healer, stepped forward. He was
frowning and the way he was trying not to look at Lady Talie made
it obvious that he was uncomfortable about speaking against her.
“Please tell us what you heard,” Osen said.
The man nodded. “A few nights ago I was gathering cures from a
storeroom when I heard voices at the rear of the room. One of the
voices belonged to Lady Talie. I heard her say, quite clearly, that
what was inside some boxes wasn’t legal. Well, that attracted my
attention, and I stopped to listen. She went on to say that she didn’t
want to know what was in them. That she moved them, Healed a
man then went home.” His frown deepened. “And that someone was
stupid for thinking something so big and heavy could be moved by
one man.”
“What did you do then?” Osen asked.
Jawen grimaced. “I left the room and went on working. I needed
time to think about what to do. A few hours later I decided I had to
tell Lady Vinara what I’d heard.”
“That is all you overheard?”
“Yes.”
“Then that is all for now.” As the man retreated to his former
position, Osen turned to the young Healer. “Lady Talie, please come
forward.”
She obeyed. Her mouth was pressed into a thin line, and there was
a crease between her brows.
“Please explain to us what Lord Jawen overheard.”
Talie drew in a deep breath and let it out again before answering.
“He has the gist of it,” she said. “I did move a box that was probably
full of illegal goods – though I don’t know that for sure. When Lord
Jawen overheard me, I was worried if this meant I’d broken a rule
or law, and was asking a friend what she thought.”
“How did you nd yourself in a situation where you might
question the legality of your actions?”
She looked at the oor. “I was tricked. Well, not tricked … but I
didn’t feel like I could refuse.” She paused to shake her head. “What
I mean is, someone I wish I didn’t know took me to that place where
the boxes were, saying a person was hurt and needed my help. He
wasn’t lying, actually. One of the boxes had fallen on top of a man
and his thigh bone had been crushed. I had to lift the box o him so
I could Heal him. Once I’d done that they took me home.”
Sonea felt a pang of sympathy. The young woman clearly could
not have left the injured man in his predicament. She shouldn’t have
gone with the smuggler in the rst place, of course, but she wasn’t
asked to do anything criminal. Yet, while Healing isn’t a criminal
activity, moving a box of illegal goods might be considered so.
“So your only action was to move one box and Heal a man?” Osen
asked.
“Yes.”
“And you don’t know for sure that the goods inside were illegal.”
She grimaced and shook her head. “No.”
“Did you receive any payment for your help?”
“He tried to give me something but I refused to take it.”
“Is that all you can tell us?”
She paused, then cast a doubtful glance at Lady Vinara. “I’d have
Healed that man anyway. And moved the box o him. I couldn’t
have left him like that.”
Osen nodded then turned to the Higher Magicians. “Any questions
for Lady Talie or Lord Jawen?”
“I have one for Lady Talie. Has this man asked favours or services
of you before?” Lord Garrel asked.
“No.”
“What is your connection to him, then?”
Talie looked at Osen and bit her lip. “He has done work and
favours for my family, though it was years ago before anyone knew
he was involved in anything illegal.”
“Could you take someone back to the place these goods were
stored?”
“No. He made sure the carriage windows were covered. When we
arrived the carriage was inside a big room. And even if I did know
where it was, I doubt the goods are still there.”
Sonea smiled at that. The young Healer was probably right. But by
saying so, she had suggested she knew more about smuggling than a
magician from a House ought to.
No more questions came, so Osen sent Lord Jawen and Lady Talie
out of the hall. When they were gone, Lord Telano sighed.
“This is ridiculous,” he said. “She only did what any Healer ought
to do. She shouldn’t be punished for that.”
“She wasn’t paid,” Garrel added. “She didn’t bene t from it. I see
no wrongdoing here.”
“The rule forbids involvement in criminal activity as well as
bene ting from it,” Vinara pointed out. “But I agree. Moving a box
is hardly involvement in crime.”
“Still, we ought to be discouraging magicians from having
anything to do with such people,” Lord Peakin said.
“Which, as we established recently, is too di cult to enforce and
apparently unfair to some Guild members,” Garrel reminded him.
“Has she clearly broken a rule?” Osen asked.
None of the magicians answered. Several shook their heads.
“Does anybody believe she should be punished?”
The question received the same response. Osen nodded. “Then,
unless anybody disagrees with me, I will declare she has broken no
rule. I will also let it be known that Lord Jawen acted correctly in
reporting what he heard, and state that tests of the new rule are
bene cial and to be encouraged. We don’t want anyone taking
today’s decision as an indicator that doing favours for dubious
characters will always be overlooked.”
“Do you think Lady Talie would agree to identify this man and
con rm his activities for the Guard?” Rothen asked, looking back at
Lady Vinara.
“I imagine she would be reluctant,” Vinara replied. “If he had
enough in uence to force her to this store, then he may have
enough to prevent her speaking against him. I will ask her, but only
if the Guard does require her help.”
“If she agrees and a conviction is achieved, it will discourage
criminals from taking advantage of magicians,” Osen said. He called
the young Healer back in and told her their decision. She looked
relieved.
And perhaps a little annoyed to have been put through this, Sonea
observed. Osen announced the meeting over and the Higher
Magicians began to leave. As she reached the oor of the hall, she
found Rothen waiting for her.
“What do you think?” he murmured to her.
“I think the new rule is going to be ine ective at keeping
magicians and criminals apart,” she replied.
“But in the past someone of her status would never have been
reported, not even if what she’d done was clearly wrong.”
“No, but there is nothing to stop that sort of bias returning as
magicians realise the limitations of the new rule. I won’t be
convinced it’s an improvement unless the degree of harassment of
lower-class-origin magicians lessens.”
“Do you think she would have helped the injured man if there was
no incentive to please the man who asked her to?”
Sonea considered the question. “Yes, though not without some
disdain.”
He chuckled. “Well, that’s an improvement on the past anyway.
Thanks to your hospices, it’s no longer thought of as acceptable to
deny Healing because the patient can’t a ord it.”
She looked at him, surprised. “Things have changed that much?
But surely Vinara hasn’t stopped charging patients who come to the
Healers’ Quarters.”
“No.” He smiled. “It’s more of an attitude change. It’s not, well,
healerly to ignore anyone you stumble upon who is in great need.
That is, if they are injured or dying – not if they’ve got a hangover
or the winter cough. It is as if the ideal for a Healer to aspire to is
now someone who has Vinara’s cleverness and your compassion.”
She stared at him in disbelief and dismay.
He laughed. “I’d love to come to the end of my life knowing I’d
made a change for the good, but despite all my work I don’t think I
will. But now I see how uncomfortable it makes you, I wonder if I
should be grateful for that.”
“You have made a di erence, Rothen,” she protested. “I’d have
never become a magician if it were not for you. And what is this
talk of your life ending? It’s going to be years – decades – before
you need to start planning a gravestone to outdazzle everyone
else’s.”
He grimaced. “A plain one will do just ne.”
“That’s good, because by then there’ll be no gold left in the Allied
Lands except what’s on magicians’ headstones. Now, that’s enough
talk of death. Regin is, no doubt, pacing outside my door wanting to
know how we decided, and I’d like to get that little interview over
with so I can get some sleep in before tonight’s shift.”
Nine men now rode on either side of Achati’s carriage each day –
four Sachakan magicians, their source slaves and one of the grey-
skinned Duna tribesmen from the north, who had been hired as a
tracker.
Dannyl had been acutely aware that these powerful men had left
their comfortable homes and joined the search based on a mere
guess that Lorkin and Tyvara were heading for the mountains, and
that the Traitors would continue working toward the pair being
captured. If he was wrong … it would be embarrassing at the least.
If the four magicians doubted Dannyl’s reasoning, they hid it well.
They and Achati had discussed their plans in a way that had
included Dannyl, but made it clear he was not in charge. He decided
it was best to accept that, to seek their advice on everything and go
along with their plans, but always make it clear he was determined
to nd his assistant and would not easily be persuaded otherwise.
One had asked the Duna tribesman, Unh, if he thought Lorkin and
Tyvara were heading toward the Traitor home. The man had
nodded and pointed toward the mountains.
The tribesman rarely spoke, and if he did he used as few words as
possible to get across his meaning. He wore only a skirt of cloth on
top of which a belt was strapped, hung with little drawstring bags,
strange carvings and a small knife in a wooden sheath. At night he
slept outside, and though he accepted food brought to him by the
slaves he never spoke to them or ordered them about.
I wonder if all his people are like this.
“What are you thinking?”
Dannyl blinked and looked at Achati. The Sachakan was regarding
him thoughtfully from the opposite seat in the carriage.
“About Unh. He has so few possessions and seems to need so little.
Yet he does not behave like a poor man or beggar. He is …
digni ed.”
“The Duna tribe have lived the same way for thousands of years,”
Achati told him. “They are nomads, constantly travelling. I suppose
you would learn to keep only what you most needed if you had to
carry it all the time.”
“Why do they travel so much?”
“Their land is constantly changing. Cracks open up and leak
poisonous fumes, molten blackrock from the nearby volcanoes spills
over the land or scorching ash falls on it. Every few hundred years
or so my people have tried to take their lands, either by force or by
establishing towns and claiming the land by settling on it. In the
rst case the Duna vanished into the dangerous shadows of the
volcanoes, and in the latter they simply traded with the settlers and
waited. It soon becomes clear that crops won’t grow consistently
and animals die there, and each time my people have abandoned
the villages and returned to Sachaka. The Duna returned to their old
ways and …” Achati stopped as the carriage turned, and looked out
of the window. “Looks like we have arrived.”
They passed low white walls, then a pair of open gates. As soon as
the carriage stopped, Achati’s slave opened the door. Following his
companion out, Dannyl looked around at the estate courtyard and
the slaves lying, face-down, on the dusty ground. The rest of the
magicians, their slaves and the Duna tribesman dismounted, and
Achati stepped forward to speak to the head slave.
I wonder how many of these slaves are Traitors, Dannyl thought. At
each estate they’d stayed at, with the permission of the owners, the
Sachakans had read the slave’s minds. Many believed that some of
the country estates run by slaves, and a few by Ashaki, were
actually controlled by Traitors, and were secret training places for
spies.
This estate was run by an Ashaki. Dannyl’s helpers had decided it
was the safest one in this area to investigate. Even so, the thought
that they might be in a place e ectively controlled by Traitors sent a
small shiver of excitement and fear down Dannyl’s spine. If the
slaves were all Traitors, did that mean they were also magicians? If
they were, they outnumbered the visitors.
But even if they were all spies and black magicians, they would
need a strong reason to attack a group of visiting Ashaki. The
inevitable retaliation would force them to abandon their hold on the
estate.
The head slave took them all to the Master’s Room. The Ashaki
owner, an old man with a limp, greeted them warmly. When they
explained why they were there, and that they needed to read the
minds of his slaves, he agreed reluctantly.
“It is likely there are Traitors among my slaves,” he admitted.
“Considering how close we are to the mountains. But they seem to
have a way of hiding it from their thoughts.” He shrugged,
suggesting that he’d given up on nding them.
After an hour, all the slaves but a few eld workers had been read.
The Ashaki visitors retired to the guest rooms, where they lounged
on cushions and discussed what they had learned, after rst sending
away the slaves sent to attend to them.
“A female slave from another estate visited last night,” one of the
Ashaki said. “She wanted food for four people.”
Another nodded. “A lone woman was seen arriving and leaving by
one of the eld workers. She took food to a stock cart.”
“We heard about this stock cart last night,” Achati said. “Is it the
same one? Is it unusual for a cart to be travelling this way?”
“It’s not unusual for more prosperous estates to sell feed to less
fertile ones at the foot of the mountains.”
“They are in the cart,” stated a new voice.
All looked up to see Unh standing in the doorway. He looked
oddly out of place indoors, Dannyl noted. Like a plant which you
know will die from lack of sunlight.
“A slave told me,” the man said. He turned and walked away.
The Ashaki exchanged thoughtful looks. None of them questioned
Unh’s claim, Dannyl noted. What reason would the tribesman have to
lie? He is being paid to nd Lorkin and Tyvara.
Achati turned to Dannyl. “You were right, Ambassador. The
Traitors do want us to nd them, and they have nally given us
directions.”
CHAPTER 25
THE MESSENGER’S NEWS
W hile not as sturdy as the boots the Guild had provided for
Lorkin all his life, the simple leather shoes slaves wore made
little noise. The pack he carried had seemed too small and
light to contain enough supplies at rst, but the weight of it
appeared to have grown since he’d rst shouldered it. Tyvara had
taken the lead, walking with steady, measured steps as the way
became more steep and di cult. Chari followed behind Lorkin,
uncharacteristically quiet.
They’d told him to avoid using magic in any obvious way, now
that he was in territory patrolled by the Traitors. If they’d detected
the barrier he’d raised both to protect himself and keep the air
around him warm, they must have decided it wasn’t an obvious use
of magic, as neither had commented on it. Though they had assured
him that the Traitors would not attack him while he was with two
of their people, he wasn’t about to gamble his life on it. Not after
their encounter with Rasha.
They’d left the cart and the road a few hours before, and were
travelling on foot across hills and valleys that grew rapidly more
steep and stony. Neither woman spoke. Lorkin found he missed
Chari’s chatter and constant questions. Tyvara had grown more
withdrawn the further they travelled. Her frowns made him feel
vaguely guilty, but he wasn’t sure why.
She’s heading toward judgement by her people for killing one of their
own, which wouldn’t be happening if she hadn’t saved my life.
Abruptly, Tyvara slowed and he pulled up short to avoid
stumbling into her. Looking past her shoulder, he saw that, beyond
a rise ahead, a group of people were standing before two small huts.
They were watching as he, Tyvara and Chari approached.
The huts were small and old and circled by a low fence. From the
eaves hung animal skins, and several hide stretchers leaned against
the walls, but none of the people gathered outside looked like
hunters. All wore simple clothing made of ne cloth. Most were
women. He noted two men standing among them and felt a mild
surprise. After all that Tyvara and Chari had said about their people,
he’d almost come to expect to see no men at all.
A hundred or so paces from the waiting group, Tyvara stopped.
She turned to look at Lorkin, frowning as she considered something.
“I can speak for you, if you want,” Chari o ered.
Tyvara scowled at her. “I can speak for myself,” she snapped.
“Stay here.” Turning on her heel, she stalked toward her people,
leaving Chari and Lorkin to exchange a look of bemusement.
“Have you two fallen out over something?” he asked.
Chari shook her head and smiled. “No. Why do you ask?”
“She hasn’t behaved as if the two of you are friends.”
“Oh, don’t worry about that.” Chari chuckled and turned to look at
the group. “She’s just jealous. And she doesn’t know it.”
“Jealous of what?”
Chari gave him a lofty look. “You really don’t know? I’ve always
wondered how it was that men in the rest of the world are in
charge, when they’re so perpetually thick.”
He snorted softly. “And I’m curious to know how Traitor women
stay in charge when they’re just as inclined to communicate by
indirect hints and innuendo as women everywhere else.”
She laughed. “Oh, I like you, Lorkin. If Tyvara doesn’t wake up to
herself and—” A voice called out and she immediately grew serious.
She gave him a crooked smile. “Looks like it’s time to introduce
you.”
He followed her across the remaining distance to the waiting
Traitors. Tyvara watched them, her brow creased with a worried
frown. Chari did not look at her friend, but xed her attention on a
middle-aged woman with grey streaks in her long hair.
“Speaker Savara,” she said respectfully. She gestured gracefully
toward Lorkin. “Lorkin, assistant to Guild Ambassador Dannyl, of
the land of Kyralia.”
The woman nodded. “Lord Lorkin,” she said. “If I am correct.”
“You are, indeed,” he replied, inclining his head. “An honour to
meet you, Speaker Savara.”
Savara smiled. “It is polite of you to say so, after all you have been
through.” She drew in a deep breath. “First, I wish to convey from
the queen, but also heartfelt from myself, an apology for the
disruption, fear and threat to your life that you have endured due to
the Traitors. Whether Tyvara’s actions are deemed justi able or not,
you have been put through a great deal and for that we feel
responsible.”
It did not seem like a good moment to be defending Tyvara, so he
nodded. “Thank you.”
“If you wish to rejoin the Guild Ambassador, we can have you
safely delivered into his protection. I can also arrange for guides to
take you back to the Kyralian border. Which would you prefer?”
“Again, thank you,” Lorkin replied. “I am aware that there will be
a trial to judge Tyvara’s actions and I would like to speak in her
defence, if that is possible.”
Savara’s eyebrows rose, and a murmur of surprise and interest
went through the rest of the gathering.
“That would mean taking him to Sanctuary,” someone said.
“The queen would never agree to it.”
“Unless we hold the trial outside Sanctuary.”
“No, that would be too dangerous. If there was an ambush we’d
lose too many valuable people.”
“Nobody is going to ambush us,” Savara said rmly.
She looked back at her people and they fell silent. Turning back to
Lorkin, she considered him thoughtfully. “It is an admirable thing
you wish to do. I will think on it. How much does the Guild know
about us?”
Lorkin shook his head. “Nothing. Well, they’ve heard nothing from
me, anyway. I haven’t communicated with anyone there.”
“And what of the Guild magician here?” He has been following
you since you left Arvice. With surprising accuracy.”
“I haven’t communicated with Dannyl either,” Lorkin told her
rmly. “But I’m not surprised he is searching successfully. He is
clever and unlikely to give up.” He paused as he realised the truth of
his words. Was Dannyl smart and determined enough to follow him
all the way to Sanctuary?
“He’s had plenty of help from Traitors, no doubt,” Tyvara
muttered.
Savara looked at her. “You have explained the likely price for
entering the city?”
Tyvara paused, then looked down. “No. I was hoping we’d nd a
way around that.”
The Speaker frowned, then sighed and nodded. “I’ll see what I can
do. Rest and eat.”
With that, the group scattered, some moving into the huts, some
sitting on rough, narrow wooden benches that Lorkin had assumed
were a crude fence. He, Chari and Tyvara moved to one of the seats
and shrugged out of their packs. A young woman dressed as a slave
brought them small cakes laced with tart berries. She smiled when
he thanked her.
“Lorkin,” Tyvara said.
He turned to her. “Yes?”
“You should take up Savara’s o er. Go back to Kyralia.”
“Not to Arvice?”
She shook her head. “I don’t trust the … the other faction. They
might try to kill you again.”
“And how are you going to prove that they’ve tried it before?”
Her lips pressed into a thin line. “I’ll let them read my mind.”
He heard Chari draw in a sharp breath. “You can’t,” she hissed.
“You promised the …” She looked at Lorkin, then bit her lip.
Tyvara sighed. “We’ll nd a way around it,” she told Chari. She
turned to Lorkin. “The price Savara spoke of … if you come to
Sanctuary there’s a good chance you won’t be allowed to leave
again. Would you be willing to stay there for the rest of your life?”
He stared at her in disbelief. The rest of his life? Never see Mother or
Rothen or his friends again?
“You haven’t told him this before?” Chari asked, her tone shocked
and disbelieving.
Tyvara ushed and looked away. “No. I couldn’t send him back to
Arvice. Someone would have tried to kill him. I knew once I found
someone from our faction he’d be safe.”
“Faction?”
“Lorkin came up with the term. I mean those of us who agree with
the queen, and Savara, on … most things.”
Chari nodded. “Not a bad term, really.” She looked at him. “We’ve
been avoiding calling ourselves anything, because it would mean
there was a split within the Traitors, and if we named the two sides
it would only encourage people to, well, take sides.” She turned to
Tyvara. “They might not want Lorkin to stay, since he is one of the
reasons for the split.”
“Nobody from the other side will trust him enough to let him go
once he knows the city’s location. And few from our side will,
either.”
“Then we cover his eyes and make sure he can’t nd it again.”
Tyvara sighed. “We all know how well that worked last time.”
“Last time it was a Sachakan, and he was a spy,” Chari pointed
out. “Lorkin is di erent. And how is Sanctuary ever going to form
alliances and trade with other nations if we never let visitors into
and out of the city?”
Tyvara opened her mouth, then closed it again. “It’s too soon for
that,” she said. “We can’t even trust each other, let alone
foreigners.”
“Well, we have to start some time.” Chari sni ed and looked
away. “You bring him all this way, and now you want him gone. I
think you’re too scared of being responsible for someone.”
Tyvara’s head snapped up and she glared at her friend. “That’s—”
But she stopped herself. Her eyes narrowed. Rising, she stalked
away, sitting down again several strides away. Chari sighed.
“Don’t worry,” she told Lorkin. “She isn’t always this grumpy.” She
looked at him and smiled. “I mean it. When she’s not worried silly,
she’s smart, funny and quite lovable. And apparently quite good
under the rug, as we say here.” She winked, then grew serious.
“Though choosy. Not any and every man for our Tyvara. Don’t
worry about that.”
He gazed at her in surprise at this sudden and unexpected ow of
personal information, then looked down and hoped his amusement
and embarrassment weren’t obvious. So, here’s yet another way
Traitor women are di erent to Kyralian women. He thought back to
some of the women he’d taken to bed over the last year. Well, maybe
not that di erent, but certainly more open about it.
Though why Chari was trying to reassure him …
Suddenly, he understood what Chari had been hinting at. She
thought there was something romantic going on between him and
Tyvara. His heart skipped a beat. Well, there has been, in a regretfully
one-sided way. Since he’d rst met Tyvara he’d found her alluring
and attractive. The night he’d nearly been murdered he’d thought it
was her in his bed, and the thought had pleased him a great deal.
Chari seems to think it isn’t one-sided. Is she right?
He stole a glance at Tyvara. She was standing again, staring in the
direction she, Chari and he had arrived from, her brows knit with
worry. He turned to see what she was looking at. Two women were
running up the path. As they passed, Lorkin heard them panting
with exertion.
They disappeared into a hut and a moment of tense silence
followed as all watched and waited, then Savara strode out followed
by a handful of Traitors and the two women. She said something
and the globe lights immediately dimmed to a faint glow.
“We must all leave immediately,” she said. Her eyes skimmed over
the assembled faces and settled on Lorkin. “The magicians tracking
Lord Lorkin are heading this way, and there are now six of them,
including the Kyralian. Divide yourselves into three groups. Each
will take a di erent route away from here. Tyvara, Lorkin and
Chari, you should come with me.”
Lorkin rose and hurried over to her. “If I talk with Ambassador
Dannyl I am sure I can persuade him to call o the search.”
She shook her head. “You may persuade him, but you won’t
persuade the others if they think they might catch us this time.
There is also a man with them – a tracker – who might succeed
where others have failed.” She smiled grimly. “I am sorry. The o er
is appreciated, but it is too great a risk.”
Lorkin nodded. Around him people were hastily picking up and
packing away all signs of their presence. One began to sweep the
ground, but Savara stopped her.
“There’s no point hiding all trace of ourselves. We want them to
either split up or follow the wrong trail.” She looked Lorkin up and
down. “Find someone with similar sized feet as his and get them to
swap shoes.”
Soon the Traitors had formed three groups of near equal size.
Savara ordered them to travel without hiding their trail until
morning, then head for Sanctuary using the usual precautions. All
murmured farewells to the other groups, then departed. Lorkin
followed as Savara’s group began to climb the steep side of the
valley, his mind shifting between wondering if his suspicions about
Tyvara were true, itching to know what Savara’s decision would be,
and worrying that Dannyl and the Sachakans would catch up with
them.
And if they did, what would the Sachakans do? What would the
Traitors do? Would it end in a ght? He didn’t want anyone dying
because of him. Well, anyone else, he amended.
If it came to a ght, what should he do? Would he have to choose
between joining Dannyl in order to prevent a battle and siding with
the Traitors so he could help save Tyvara from execution?
Too slow, Cery’s twist did not bring him out of the way far enough
or fast enough to avoid the knife pushing into his ribs. He heard
Anyi give a little hu of triumph.
“Good,” he said, resisting a smile as he let go of her and stepped
away. “You’ve got the hang of it now.”
She grinned and swapped the wooden practice knife back to her
left hand.
“Though you aimed a little high,” he told her. “You’re used to
practising with Gol, I suppose.”
“I’d have still cut you,” she pointed out.
“Yes, but your knife might have caught on my ribs.” Cery patted
his lower chest where her knife had pressed. “Which is not one of
the ve weak spots. Eyes, throat, belly, groin, knees.”
“Sometimes it’s better to smash an attacker’s knees and run than
try to stab him in the heart,” Gol said. “The heart can be hard to
reach. Ribs might skew your aim. If you miss, he can come after
you. If you get his knees, he can’t. And he mightn’t be expecting it.”
“A stab to the guts will kill slowly, too,” Cery said. “Not much fun,
but enough time to try and get you back for it.”
“And you shouldn’t kill unless ordered to,” Gol added.
“I should get you practising with shorter people.”
“And younger ones,” Anyi said. Gol gave a snort, and she turned to
him. “Come on. You’re both not as fast as you used to be, and if
anyone’s gonna send somebody after you they’re not going to get
some old assassin out of retirement to give you a sporting chance.”
Gol chuckled. “She’s got a point.”
A tapping came from the door and they all turned to face it. They
were in one of the upper-storey rooms of a bolhouse Cery owned,
known as the Grinder. It was a place where he could meet the
people of his territory who had requested an audience. Business had
to be maintained, and that meant making himself available now and
then. As with all his places, there were plenty of escape routes.
Cery nodded to Gol, who strode over to open the door. The big
man paused, then stepped aside. In the entrance stood a squat, solid
man, who had worked for Cery for years.
“A messenger’s here to speak to you,” he said. “From Skellin.”
Cery nodded. “Send him in.”
Gol took up a position to the left of Cery, arms crossed in his
typical protective pose. Anyi’s eyes narrowed, then she walked past
Cery to stand at his right. As he looked at her, she stared back
de antly, daring him to challenge her. He smothered a laugh.
“Did I say the lesson was over?” he asked, looking from her to Gol.
His bodyguard blinked, then looked at Anyi. “Get back to work,”
Cery ordered.
He watched them walk back to where they had been practising.
Gol said something, to which Anyi shrugged, then dropped into a
ghting crouch. Good, Cery thought. If Skellin’s messenger reports that
I have a new, female bodyguard, I may as well have him report on her
skills as well. I can’t hide her forever. If anyone picks that I’m keeping
someone hidden they’ll assume there’s a reason and start asking
questions.
Still, his skin pricked as a gure moved into the doorway. It was
one thing to know one’s loved ones were in danger because of who
you were, but quite another to actually put them in a position that
involved no small amount of risk.
Skellin’s messenger was lean and tall, with the constant tense
poise of a runner. His eyes met Cery’s and he nodded politely. Then
his gaze snapped to Gol and Anyi, the latter having just launched
herself in an attack. Gol countered it deftly, but she darted
gracefully out of his reach.
As Cery had expected, a spark of interest lit the messenger’s gaze,
but there was more than just professional assessment in his
expression. Suddenly Cery regretted having Anyi and Gol return to
practising. It took a great e ort to keep his face composed and
posture relaxed.
“You have a message for me?” he asked.
“You are Cery of Northside?” the man asked, though his voice held
no doubt. It was a formality.
“Yes.”
“Skellin said to tell you that he has found the quarry and is setting
a trap. If you bring your friends to the old butchery in Inner
Westside when the sun sets tonight, they can take possession of their
new pet.”
Cery nodded. “Thank you. We’ll be there. You may go.”
The man gave a slight bow, then left. Gol walked over to the door
and closed it, before turning to regard Cery soberly. “You’ve only
got a few hours.”
“I know.” Cery frowned. “And my friend won’t be at her place of
employment yet.”
“They’ll send a message on to the Guild.”
“The Guild?” Anyi repeated. She gave Cery a hard look. “What is
going on? Is this the thing you couldn’t tell me about yet?”
Cery and Gol exchanged a look. The bodyguard nodded once.
They’d discussed since the meeting with Skellin when to tell Anyi
the whole story. If they told her about the rogue – and in particular
that they suspected she was the Thief Hunter and the killer of his
family – she’d want to come along and see the woman captured. If
he ordered her to stay behind she would probably disobey him,
guring she’d wear whatever punishment he gave her for it.
Assuming he discovered she had disobeyed him.
It wasn’t that she made a habit of defying him, but with something
this big she’d make an exception. He would too, in her place.
He could, instead, simply not tell her about the rogue, but there
was still a good chance she’d slip away and follow him just to nd
out. Again, it was what he would have done.
So he and Gol had decided their only choice was to involve her in
the capture by giving her a relatively safe job to do. Once again she
would be one of his shadow guards. This time she would have to
know the nature of the quarry they were chasing. There would be
no rushing in to ght this enemy if things went wrong. Fighting
magicians with knives was pointless and suicidal.
“Yes, the Guild. It is time you knew what we’re dealing with,”
Cery told her. “There are three things you will learn from tonight:
even the most powerful Thief has limitations, it pays to have friends
in high places, and there are some things best left to magicians.”
There was a long pause between when Sonea knocked on the door
of Administrator Osen’s o ce to when it nally swung open. Osen’s
gaze was slightly distracted as he ushered them in.
“Black Magician Sonea, Lord Rothen,” he said hesitantly. “I’ve
called you here because Ambassador Dannyl and the Sachakans who
have volunteered to help him are close to catching Lord Lorkin and
his abductors.”
Sonea’s heart stopped, then lurched into a racing beat. She opened
her mouth to ask him … what? What to ask rst? Where was
Lorkin? Did the Sachakans understand that they weren’t to kill him?
“How long until they do?” Rothen asked.
“Dannyl can’t say exactly. Half an hour. Maybe less. You had
better make yourselves comfortable.”
Osen sat down behind his desk, and she and Rothen used magic to
move two of the room’s armchairs to the front. Osen’s gaze slid to
the distance.
He is linked to Dannyl by a blood ring, she guessed. What can he see?
She wanted to demand that he describe everything he saw in detail,
but instead took a deep breath and let it out slowly.
“You said ‘abductors’,” she pointed out. “Is there more than one?”
Osen paused and his gaze shifted to somewhere far beyond the
o ce walls.
“Yes. Several Traitors. Unh thinks eight.”
“Unh?”
The Administrator’s gaze focused on her with di culty. “A Duna
tribesman. He’s tracking for them. Apparently he’s quite good at it.
Wait …” His expression shifted and became eager. “They got a look
at them. Just a glimpse …”
He was silent, staring at the desk without seeing it for a painfully
long moment. Sonea realised she was gripping the arms of her chair.
She forced herself to let go and folded her hands in her lap instead.
“Ah.” Osen’s shoulders dropped with disappointment.
“What?” Rothen asked. Sonea glanced at him. He was leaning
forward, his eyes wide.
Osen shook his head. “He’s not there. Not in that group. They’re
following the wrong trail – wrong people.” He sucked in a breath,
held it, then sighed. “There were three trails, apparently. They
thought he was with one of them, but they were wrong. They’re
going to have to go back and try another trail.”
Sonea let out a sigh of frustration. Rothen groaned and leaned
against the back of his chair. Silence lled the room. Nobody spoke.
Osen’s gaze had shifted to the distance again. Rothen was rubbing
his forehead.
Then all jumped at a loud knock at the door.
Osen waved a hand. The door opened and a Healer stepped inside.
The young man looked at Sonea, smiled and hurried toward her,
holding out a slip of paper.
“Forgive the interruption, Administrator,” he said. “I have an
urgent message for Black Magician Sonea.”
She took the paper from him and nodded in reply as he bent into a
shallow bow. He hurried from the room. When the door closed she
looked down at the note, then unfolded it.
Your friend in the city says his friend has found the thing you’re after.
You have to be at the old butcher’s building in Inner Westside by sunset.
Bring your other friend.
If she’d been in a better mood she would have laughed at the
vague and rather silly language. But this was the last thing she
needed. How could she race o into the city to catch the rogue
when Lorkin could be found at any moment?
A hand passed before her eyes and plucked the message from her.
Her heart skipped, but it was only Rothen. He scanned the note,
looked at her and narrowed his eyes in thought.
“How long until they backtrack to where the trail split?”
“A few hours,” Osen intoned, his gaze still xed on far-away
things.
“And then a few more before they travel as far down the next one.
Shall we leave you to follow their progress, and return later?”
“Of course.” Osen snapped out of his trance and looked at them in
turn. “I’m sorry. These blood stones are remarkably involving of the
attention. I should have Dannyl take o the ring until he is close to
nding Lorkin again.” He waved a hand. “Go.”
Rothen rose, then looked at Sonea. She stood up reluctantly. How
can I leave now? But it’ll be hours before they catch up with Lorkin. I
can’t sit here waiting while the rogue escapes. And if we don’t turn up
and Cery confronts the rogue by himself, he might get hurt.
She forced herself to move, following Rothen to the door, then out
into the corridor. Long shadows striped the Guild grounds outside
the University doors. The Healer was waiting for her, smiling
nervously as she noticed him. Rothen beckoned to the man.
“Has anyone contacted Lord Regin?” he murmured.
The young man frowned and shook his head. Rothen turned to
Sonea. “Sunset is not far o . You had better go now. I’ll nd Regin
and send him to meet you at the hospice.”
Hospice. Of course. I can’t go straight to Inner Westside. Must maintain
the ruse, in case this doesn’t work. That means we really don’t have
much time …
The urgency of their mission seized her at last, and she shooed
Rothen away. “Tell him to go straight there.” She turned to the
Healer. “Did you come by carriage?”
He nodded. “It’s waiting outside for you.”
“Good man.” She smiled and rubbed her hands together. “Let’s go,
then.”
CHAPTER 26
A LONG NIGHT
I t was Unh who had noticed the scatter of stalks beside the road,
which he said might be feed that had spilled from a cart when it
had stopped there. The local Ashaki hadn’t wanted to investigate,
eager to chase after the cart, but Achati had sided with the
tribesman, jokingly reminding them that Unh hadn’t been hired so
that they had someone to ignore.
The tribesman found the tracks of three people wearing slave
shoes – a man and two women – leading away from the road.
“I see this print at the last place,” Unh told them, pointing to a
slight depression in the sandy ground. “The shape is longer and
thinner than Sachakan foot, and there a hole under the heel.”
They had all been impressed with Unh. Now, hours later, they
were not so pleased with him. After nding the tracks, they’d sent
the carriages and horses on to the next estate with Achati’s driver,
and continued on foot. At the tanner’s huts, they’d followed one of
the three clear trails leading away. They’d been in a hurry because
the sun was dipping toward the horizon, but it had made the
tracker’s job harder. Long shadows, then twilight, made it di cult
for him to make out the ner details of the footprints and other
signs he was following. The Sachakans resisted creating a light for
him, as it would make them visible from a distance in this exposed
landscape. Nobody had been concerned, however, as the trail was
still clear enough for them to follow it.
It was with a surge of triumph that Dannyl had spotted the gures
in the distance. But the feeling hadn’t lasted long. It turned to
dismay as he realised Lorkin was not among them.
Much cursing had followed. The Traitors they’d tracked were too
far ahead to be caught and questioned, because doing so would take
too much time, so Dannyl and his Sachakan helpers had hurried
back to the huts. By then it was night, and creating a light for the
tracker was unavoidable. To direct the light where he needed it they
had to follow closely behind Unh, and several times they wound up
trampling the signs he was looking for. It made the process of
picking up the trail slow and di cult, so when Unh had lost the
trail completely a few hours later, Achati decided they should camp
for the night and continue after the sun rose.
The slaves dropped their burdens with obvious relief. But though
they were obviously exhausted, their masters were more demanding
than usual. The Ashaki groaned and complained, and had their
slaves rub their legs and feet. At rst Dannyl was puzzled, then he
remembered that the one kind of magic the Sachakans didn’t possess
knowledge of was Healing. While he had been soothing away the
aches and pains and blisters of walking, they had no choice but to
su er.
I hadn’t realised how much of an advantage it is to us. It could be a
signi cant one, if our countries were ever to ght each other, or another
enemy. If we both have to trek to meet our foe, the Sachakans will be the
only ones sore and tired from the e ort.
The Duna tribesman abruptly rose and announced he was going to
try locating the trail again. Achati looked at the others, saying that
someone should go with him to keep them both shielded. Dannyl
stood up.
“I’ll go. Unless you need me here?”
The magician shook his head. “Go. Keep your shield strong and
don’t go too far. The Traitors may be watching us. They may not
dare to kill anyone, but if they injured one or some of us we’d have
to split up or slow down.”
Following Unh out of the camp, Dannyl created a globe light and
set it hovering ahead of the man. He stayed several paces back and
tried to step wherever the tribesman did so that he couldn’t possibly
be trampling on any tracks but Unh’s. The distance between them
made keeping both within a shield challenging.
The Sachakans had camped in a bowl-like hollow between two
ridges. Unh made his way around the shorter arm of one ridge,
keeping his eyes to the ground. After several paces he squatted and
stared at the ground, then looked up at Dannyl and beckoned.
Dannyl closed the distance between them, then looked where Unh
was pointing.
“See here,” the man said. “That stone has been stepped upon, then
pushed back into the dirt. You can see the direction the stepper was
going by the way there is a groove at the front, and a tiny mound at
the back.”
It was rather obvious now that the man had pointed it out.
“How do you know it was a human and not an animal?”
Unh shrugged. “I don’t. It would have to be a big animal though,
and most of those were hunted out long ago.”
He rose and went looking for more signs of passage. Dannyl
followed, concentrating on holding the shield, directing the globe
light, and walking only where the tribesman did. They stopped
again and again, Unh pointing out a thread of cloth caught on one
of the few stunted trees, some human hair, and some distinct
footprints in a sandy area. Then he spent a long time examining the
ground, and Dannyl used the opportunity to look around, trying not
to imagine gures watching them in the darkness. He glanced to the
side and felt a shiver run down his spine.
“Is that a cave?” he asked, pointing at a crack in the steep slope to
one side.
Unh rose and approached the gash of darkness in the rock slowly.
He continued to scan the ground, his head nodding from it to the
crack and back again.
“Nobody went this way,” he said. He touched the side of the
opening. “This happen not long ago.”
He beckoned and Dannyl hurried over. They peered into the
darkness. Dannyl drew magic and created another light, which he
sent inside. Stones lled the base of the crack, sloping downward
then levelling o . The sides of the opening continued for a short
way, then ended in darkness.
“There a bigger space inside. Want to look?” Unh asked.
Dannyl glanced back toward the camp, which was not far out of
sight, then nodded. Unh grinned, an expression at odds with his
usual digni ed aloofness. A thrill of eagerness went through Dannyl,
not unlike the excitement he’d felt so long ago when exploring the
Allied Lands with Tayend.
Unh gestured to the opening. “You rst.”
Dannyl chuckled. Of course. He was far more likely to survive if
they happened to surprise a wild animal, or Traitors.
The oor was loose gravelly rock, and he half slid down into the
space. Looking around, he saw only darkness and the hint of walls
all around. He paused as Unh slid down to join him, then he
increased the strength of the light …
… and ducked as walls of glittering gemstones shone back at him.
A sound echoed in the room, and he realised he had let out a
wordless exclamation of fear.
No relentless strikes came. He was breathing heavily, his heart
hammering in his chest.
“You seen something like this before,” Unh stated. He was
regarding Dannyl with interest.
Dannyl looked at him. “Yes.” No point denying it. His reaction had
been nothing less than obvious.
“This not dangerous.”
The man spoke with certainty and authority. Now it was Dannyl’s
turn to look at his companion with curiosity.
“You know what this is?”
Unh nodded and looked around, his expression knowing and
happy. “Yes. These stones have no power. They have not been raised
to have power. They are natural. Safe.”
“So … the stones in the place I was in before were made to be
dangerous?”
“Yes. By people. Where was this place?”
“In Elyne. Beneath an ancient ruined city.”
Unh nodded again. “A people once lived in the mountains here.
They knew the secret of the stones. But they are gone. All things
end.” He shook his head. “Not all,” he corrected. “A few secrets
Duna kept.”
“You know how to make gemstones with magic in them?”
“Not me. Some of my people. Trusted ones.” His expression
darkened. “And Traitors. Long ago they came and made a pact. But
they broke it and stole the secrets. That is why I help the Sachakans,
even after what they do to my people. The Duna not forgiven the
Traitors.”
“Do the Traitors know how to make caves like the one in Elyne?”
Dannyl asked. If he’d known that, he’d never have entered this one
like some child exploring for fun.
“No,” Unh replied. “Nobody knows that. Even the Duna forget
some things.”
“That’s one thing probably best forgotten.”
“Yes.” Unh grinned. “I like you, Kyralian.”
Dannyl blinked in surprise. “Thank you. I like you, too.”
The man turned away. “We get back to camp now. I found trail.”
It was much harder to get out of the cave than into it, with the
stones sliding out from under their feet, but the tribesman set his
toes into the rough surface of one side of the crack and climbed out
that way. Dannyl created a small disc of magic under his feet and
levitated out. Unh seemed to nd this very funny.
The walk back to camp was much quicker, since Unh no longer
needed to stop and examine the ground. Dannyl was relieved to nd
that the magicians had let their slaves go to sleep, sprawled on the
ground behind them. They were drinking some sort of liquor from
the ornate cups each had brought with them. Dannyl accepted a
measure of the ery liquid. He only half listened to their
conversation about an Ashaki’s son who had no skill as a trader and
was going to ruin his family.
His mind kept returning to the fear that had coursed through him
when he’d seen the walls of gemstones. I never even thought to
wonder the worth of them as mere jewels, even after I calmed down.
Hmm. I don’t think I did last time, either. But then, I was rather
distracted …
A memory ashed through his mind of waking up utterly drained
of power. Of Tayend, and the realisation of what he’d been hiding
from himself for most of his life. That he was a “lad.” That he loved
Tayend.
He felt a wave of sadness. A pity we had to change so much. Instead
of growing around each other like that romantic notion of couples being
like entwined trees, we became uncomfortably tangled, competing for
water and soil.
He snorted softly. Such sentimental imagery was more the taste of
Tayend’s poet friends. He looked at the Sachakans and Unh. They’d
nd such notions foolish, though in quite di erent ways.
Do the Traitors know of the cave? Unh said the crack was recent. I
doubt the Sachakans do. From what I recall, the Duna’s main trade is
selling gemstones. I wonder if Unh plans to come back with some of his
people and harvest them before the Traitors discover them.
Then he recalled what Unh had said. The Duna knew how to make
gemstones with magical properties. It was hard to imagine that a
people like his could have access to such rare knowledge, yet live a
simple, nomadic life.
Maybe it’s not all that simple, after all.
How was it that the Traitors could have such power, but have
never left their hidden city? Clearly there were limitations to the
gemstones. Maybe they had to be xed to a surface, in a cave, in
great numbers, in order to be an e ective weapon.
The records of the storestone did not say it was xed to anything. If it
had been, removing it would have made it worthless. So why bother
chasing after the thief?
Lorkin would be very interested to know what he’d learned
tonight. But Lorkin was with the Traitors …
… and the Traitors had knowledge of magical gemstones.
Dannyl caught his breath.
Suddenly he understood something that was going to cause him
considerable awkwardness with the men he was with, the Sachakan
king, the Guild and, not the least, Lorkin’s mother.
Suddenly he understood there was a good chance Lorkin did not
want to be found.
Not long after dawn, Savara had called a halt on a high, exposed
ridge. The way had grown steeper and more rugged through the
night, and all of the Traitors in their group had used tiny, faint
lights hovering close to the ground to illuminate the way. After
posting guards and sending out scouts, she told the rest of the group
to settle just beyond the crest of the ridge, out of sight, and try to
sleep.
“Our pursuers are several hours behind us now,” she said. “They’ll
have to stop to rest, too, and they’re not as used to moving about in
such rough territory as we are. We’ll continue on after sunset.”
The rest of the Traitors wore small packs like the ones Lorkin,
Tyvara and Chari had carried since leaving the cart. He now
discovered what the rolled-up bundles of thick fabric were. They
were unrolling them for use as a mattress. He’d assumed they were
some sort of blanket. But it made sense they’d carry a mattress over
a blanket: magicians could heat the air but they couldn’t make the
ground any softer.
Certainly not around here, he thought as he stretched out next to
Chari and Tyvara. The area was all rock and stones, with the
occasional twisted tree. Hearing footsteps, he turned to see Savara
approaching and quickly got up again.
“I’ve considered your proposal and consulted with the queen,” she
told him. Via a blood ring, no doubt, he thought. “If you still wish to
accompany us to Sanctuary she will allow it. But she will not be the
one to decide if you will be permitted to leave again. That decision
will be made by vote, which makes it likely you will have to stay.
Many Traitors will fear you will reveal the location of the city if we
let you go.”
Lorkin nodded. “I understand.”
“Take some time to think about it,” she said. “But I will need your
decision before we leave tonight.”
She moved away, climbing to the top of the ridge and sitting in
the shadow of a large boulder. Keeping watch, Lorkin decided. He lay
down again, despite knowing he wouldn’t be able to sleep with such
a decision to make.
“Nobody would think badly of you if you went home,” a voice said
nearby.
He rolled over to see Chari watching him, one arm beneath her
head as a pillow.
“This other faction – the one that sent someone to kill me – will
they try it again if I go to Sanctuary?” he asked.
“No,” she answered without hesitation. “One of our queens
decided long ago that there can be no such thing as assassination in
Sanctuary. I think a few of our people decided that if it was a good
political tool outside of Sanctuary it would be so inside it too. In
Sanctuary, murder is murder, except when it’s execution, which is
the punishment for murder.”
Lorkin nodded. Which is what Tyvara is facing.
“Is there any chance a Traitor will want to read my mind?”
“They’ll all want to get a look inside that head of yours. But they
aren’t allowed to unless you agree to it. Forcibly reading someone’s
mind is also a serious crime. It would make us too much like the
Ashaki.”
“So if I refuse … surely they will want to check if I’ve got good
intentions before letting me into the city.”
“They’d love to. But laws are laws. Some of them are a little crazy.
Like how the queen can decide if an outsider is allowed into the
city, but not if they can leave again.”
“If I can’t leave, what will be expected of me then?”
“To follow our laws, of course.” She shrugged. “Which includes
contributing to the work of the city. You can’t expect to be fed and
have a bed to sleep on if you don’t help out in some way.”
“Sounds fair.”
Chari smiled. “Any more questions?”
“No.” Lorkin rolled onto his back. “Not yet, anyway.”
He’d done a lot of thinking since they’d joined Speaker Savara and
her companions and learned that he might not be able to leave
Sanctuary. In that time he’d listed reasons why he should and
shouldn’t go there. The list of reasons not to was short:
I came to Sachaka to assist Dannyl, not go o on adventures of my
own – even if those adventures might lead to a bene cial alliance for the
Guild.
He didn’t have the authority to negotiate an alliance. But he only
needed to get the Traitors to the point of wanting to negotiate and
then arrange for a Guild magician with the authority to meet them.
Like Dannyl.
Mother will not like it.
But this was a decision for him to make, for himself. Still, thinking
of her he felt both longing and guilt. He did not like the thought of
never seeing her again. Or never speaking to her. He still hadn’t had
a chance to use her blood ring without revealing its existence to
anyone. If he entered Sanctuary, would he be searched? Would the
Traitors take the ring o him if they found it? If they were so
suspicious of him that they wouldn’t let him leave Sanctuary, they
certainly wouldn’t want him using a magical device that allowed
him to convey everything he knew to the Guild.
He was beginning to think that he should use it soon, even if just
to reassure his mother. And then nd a place to hide it.
Retaining the ring is another reason not to go to Sanctuary. It’s only a
small reason, though. And one I can remove.
There were many more reasons to go than not, however. First,
there was Tyvara. He could not contemplate abandoning her. If he
didn’t speak on her behalf at the trial, she might be executed. She
had saved his life, and might die for it. Which would make it
entirely his fault.
Even if I knew she would be ne, the thought of never seeing her again
… His chest tightened and his heart began to beat faster. He
frowned. There is more to this than an obligation to help her. I like her.
A lot. I couldn’t abandon her, even if she doesn’t have the same feelings
for me.
He thought about what Chari had hinted at. “Not any and every
man for our Tyvara. Don’t worry about that.” The woman believed
that Tyvara found him attractive. But Tyvara wasn’t behaving that
way. She seemed determined to repel him, frowning and scowling
when he talked to her, and trying to talk him into going home. Each
time she did, Chari assured him that Tyvara felt guilty for not telling
him earlier about the price for entering Sanctuary, and didn’t want
him sacri cing his freedom for her sake.
But if I let her talk me into going home, she’d have not only saved me,
but possibly sacri ced her own life for me. I can’t let that happen.
Tyvara wasn’t the only reason he ought to go to Sanctuary. To
have come so far, got so close to these Traitors, and not attempt to
set up negotiations between them and the Guild would be a waste of
a great opportunity. He doubted that strangers often had the chance
to enter Sanctuary and make such proposals. Even if the Traitors
didn’t like the idea, at least he’d have put it into their minds.
But how realistic was it to hope that a people so secretive would,
one day, decide to trade with the Guild?
Well, if they want Healing knowledge they’ll have to.
It was possible that the Traitors would decide it was safer to reject
Healing and remain hidden to the world, keeping him trapped in
Sanctuary. But it was worth the risk.
He had to admit, he did feel a nagging obligation to atone for his
father’s betrayal. Though he would never give them Healing
knowledge without the permission of the Guild, he could work
toward gaining that permission. He felt like he owed the Traitors
that much.
And if all goes to plan, we’ll get something in return. Perhaps only this
ability to block mind-reading, but I have a feeling they have more to
o er than that. I’m sure the mind-blocking is done with some sort of gem
like the blood stones. That could be a whole new area of magic to be
explored.
There was no way the Guild would agree to a trade with the
Traitors while they had Lorkin imprisoned. Eventually, if the
Traitors wanted Healing knowledge, they would have to let him go.
In the meantime … Chari had mentioned records. Having been
hidden away for several centuries, the Traitors must have historical
information that Dannyl had never encountered before. Records that
might lead to the rediscovery of ancient magic. Magic that the Guild
could use for its defence.
Assuming that such magic does exist, can be used for defence, and I
ever manage to get the information to the Guild.
Lorkin sighed. Perhaps he was being too optimistic, thinking that
one day the Traitors would ally themselves with the Guild and the
Allied Lands, and he would regain his freedom. Maybe it was
wishful thinking.
Yet the Traitors were much better people than those that ruled the
rest of Sachaka. They hated slavery, for a start. They counted all as
equals, men and women, magicians and non-magicians.
They also had an incredible amount of in uence over the country
through their spies. He had to admit, the possibility of them taking
over Sachaka one day was appealing. He had no doubt the rst
thing they would do is abolish slavery. He doubted they’d give up
black magic, though. Still, it would be a big step toward Sachaka
becoming one of the Allied Lands.
How can I give up and go back to Arvice, after all I’ve seen there? The
slaves, the awful hierarchy based on inheritance and black magic. The
Traitors’ society can’t be worse than that.
So many reasons to go to Sanctuary. So few to go back to Arvice.
He hadn’t realised he’d stood up until he found himself on his feet.
The feeling of determination and decisiveness was exhilarating. He
stepped past dozing women and walked to where Savara leaned
against the rock wall, her eyes closed.
“I’ll come to Sanctuary,” he told her, guessing that she wasn’t
asleep.
Her eyes ew open and snapped to his. She stared at him, her gaze
disconcertingly intelligent. He found himself thinking that she must
have been quite a beauty in her youth.
“Good,” she said.
“But you’re going to have to let me deal with Ambassador
Dannyl,” he added. “He’s not going to give up. If you’d met my
mother you’d understand why. Eventually he’ll either nd Sanctuary
or you’ll have to kill him. I rather like him, and would appreciate
you not killing him. And if you did, there would probably be
consequences that would not be good for the Traitors.”
“How will you persuade him to stop following you?”
He smiled grimly. “I know what to say to him. I’ll need to speak to
him alone, though.”
“I doubt the Ashaki will let you go, if they see you.”
“We’ll have to lure him away from them.”
She frowned as she considered this. “I think we can arrange that.”
“Thank you.”
“Go sleep. We’ll have to let them catch up with us again, so we
may as well get some rest in the meantime.”
He walked back to his mattress and found Tyvara sitting up,
glaring at him.
“What?” he asked.
“You had better not be thinking there is more between you and I
than there actually is, Kyralian,” she said in a low voice.
He stared at her, feeling doubts starting to creep in. She stared
back, then abruptly turned away and lay down with her back to
him. He settled onto his mattress, feeling worry starting to eat at
him.
Perhaps this is a one-sided thing …
“Don’t worry,” Chari whispered. “She always does this. The more
she likes someone the more she pushes them away.”
“Shut up, Chari,” Tyvara hissed.
Lying on the hard ground, Lorkin knew that sleep was going to be
impossible. It was going to be a very long day. And he was
beginning to wonder if there might be a signi cant downside to
living in a city of women like these.
As Regin related the nal stages of the Ichani Invasion, Sonea cursed
Cery again and tried not to listen. After leaving the Guild, she and
the Healer who had brought the message had hurried to the hospice
by carriage.
So many hours have passed since then, it feels like something that
happened yesterday.
There had been a delay, she remembered. A Healer new to the
hospice had pinned her down with questions about protocol. Sonea
had told the man that he could ask such questions of any Healer
there, and some of the helpers, but he didn’t seem to trust them. By
the time Sonea extracted herself, Regin was there, waiting for her.
He arrived in a covered cart used to transport supplies to his
family home. She had felt strangely out of place, riding in the back
of an old cart, the both of them using empty crates as seats. But it
was a smart move. They would attract too much attention if they
arrived in a Guild carriage.
He’d also brought some threadbare old coats to wear over their
robes. For that she was immensely grateful, and a little ashamed
that she hadn’t considered how they were going to disguise
themselves.
Well, I had a lot on my mind. A lot more than Regin knows. And while
Cery knows about Lorkin’s abduction, I haven’t had a chance to tell him
that Dannyl is in the midst of tracking Lorkin down right now.
When they arrived at their destination, a man had walked up to
them and told them their host was waiting for them – just knock on
the last door to the left down that alleyway. They’d entered the old
butchery building, whose owner had been forced to move his
business away when the area had grown more prosperous and
nicky about its neighbours. It was used as a storehouse.
The sun was setting when we arrived. I was worried we were too late. I
needn’t have rushed.
They’d been ushered into a surprisingly well-furnished room. An
extraordinary-looking man had risen from one of the expensive
chairs to bow to them. He was dark like a Lonmar, but with a
distinct reddish tone to his skin, and strange, elongated eyes that
put her in mind of drawings of the dangerous predatory animals
that roamed the mountains.
He had no accent, however. He introduced himself as Skellin and
o ered them a drink. They’d declined. She assumed Regin was as
reluctant to muddle his senses before a possible magical
confrontation as she was.
Maybe I should have had that drink.
Skellin was clearly excited to meet them. When he had nally
stopped exclaiming about being in the presence of real magicians –
and the famous Black Magician Sonea herself, he told them of his
history. He and his mother had left their homeland – a land far to
the north – when he was a child. Faren, the Thief she had once
agreed to use magic for in exchange for hiding her from the Guild,
had raised him to be his heir. He remembered little of his homeland,
and considered himself a Kyralian.
Sonea had begun to warm to him at this point, though she hadn’t
forgotten that he was an importer of roet. Cery had arrived at last
and Skellin grew serious. He explained his trap. The rogue, he had
learned, worked for a roet seller who bought his supply from a
worker in this building. They were due to pick up some more. But
the timing was never sure. Sometimes they dropped by early in the
evening, sometimes late. Skellin had men ready to tell him when she
and the seller arrived. They had only to wait.
And wait we have, she thought. For hours and hours. All I want to do
is get back to Osen and nd out if Dannyl has caught up with Lorkin yet.
Instead, she and Regin had been urged to tell stories about the
Guild. Skellin knew how she had become a magician, but not how
Regin had come to join the Guild. Even though Regin’s story was
hardly exciting or unusual, it clearly intrigued Skellin. He then
wanted to know how their learning in the University was structured.
Of the rules that they had to follow. Of the disciplines and what
they involved.
It grew less pleasant when he urged them to describe the Ichani
Invasion. “You must have amazing tales to tell,” the Thief had said,
grinning. “I wasn’t there, of course. My mother and I hadn’t arrived
in the country yet.”
Regin had saved her from revisiting the more painful time in her
past by taking over the storytelling at that point. She wondered if he
had guessed how di cult it would be for her. Either way, she felt
even more gratitude toward him.
That’s three things I have to thank him for tonight, she thought. The
cart, the coats and saving me from reliving some unpleasant memories. I
had better …
A knock at the door interrupted her thoughts. Skellin called out,
and a lean man in black clothes opened the door.
“They’re here,” the man said, then backed out of the room again.
Sonea sighed with relief as quietly as she could manage. They all
rose to their feet. Skellin looked at them in turn.
“Leave your coats here, if you wish. Nobody but my people and
the rogue will see you.” He smiled. “I’m looking forward to seeing
those famous powers of yours at work. Follow me.”
They led through another door into a long corridor. Windows at
the far end glowed faintly.
It’s nearly dawn. We’ve been up all night! She felt a stab of
apprehension. Has Dannyl found Lorkin yet? What if Osen sent
someone to get me and they discovered I’m missing? Even if he hasn’t,
my allies at the hospice will have found it hard to stop the new Healer
from looking for me to ask yet more questions.
Someone must have noticed my absence by now.
But if they had, it would not matter. When she and Regin returned
to the Guild with the rogue there would be no more concealing her
venturing outside of the hospices. If Rothen was right, nobody
would care. Everybody’s attention would be on the discovery that a
magician who not only wasn’t a member of the Guild but had
actively been working for criminals had been living in the city.
If he was wrong, things were going to get very unpleasant for both
of them.
CHAPTER 27
THE TRAP IS SPRUNG
A s Cery had followed Skellin, Sonea and Regin out of the room
he’d made a mental note to apologise to Sonea, once they were
alone, for the long night she had endured. Perhaps it was only
because he’d known her for so long that he’d detected how
uncomfortable she’d been with Skellin’s questions about the Ichani
Invasion.
Though I’d have thought anyone clever enough to become a Thief as
powerful as he was, in such a short time, would realise that she’d hardly
want to talk about the battle that led to the death of the man she loved.
Cery had felt an overwhelming gratitude to Regin for taking over
at that point and saving Sonea from telling the story, or refusing to.
The irony of that wasn’t lost on him. Regin was not a person he’d
have ever expected to thank for being considerate.
At the end of the long corridor they climbed stairs to the upper
oor of the old building. Skellin led them to a closed door. He
paused as he took hold of the handle and looked at Sonea and
Regin.
“Ready?”
The two magicians nodded.
Skellin opened the door and stepped through, then moved aside
quickly as if eager not to be caught between the magicians and their
quarry. Cery followed Sonea and Regin into a room lled with
crates, lit with lamps set around the room. Four people had turned
to see who had entered. Three were men and one was a woman
wearing a cloak, the hood up and shadowing all but the dark skin of
her chin and jaw. Two of the men looked unconcerned and
unsurprised at the interruption. The third man looked from Skellin
to the magicians, his gaze dropping to their robes. He looked
shocked and frightened.
But the woman’s reaction was the most dramatic. She backed
away, then raised her arms as if to ward o a blow. The air vibrated
faintly. Sonea and Regin exchanged a knowing look. That was some
sort of magical attack, Cery guessed. The magicians turned their
attention back to the woman. She yelped in surprise and tucked her
arms in against her sides.
Or is that an involuntary movement? Cery thought. She looks as if
something invisible is wrapped around her.
The magicians paused as if waiting for something, but nothing
happened. Sonea glanced at Regin again, then walked over to the
woman.
“What is your name?” she asked.
“F-Forlie,” the woman answered, her voice trembling.
“Did you know, Forlie, that all magicians in the Allied Lands must
be members of the Magicians’ Guild?”
The woman swallowed audibly and nodded.
“Why aren’t you a member?” Sonea asked. There was no
accusation in her voice, just curiosity.
The woman blinked, then her head turned toward Skellin. “I … I
didn’t want to.”
Sonea smiled, and while it was a reassuring smile there was a
sadness to it. “We have to take you to the Guild now. They won’t
harm you, but you have broken a law. They’ll have to decide what
to do with you. If you cooperate it will be better for you in the long
run. Will you come with us quietly?”
Forlie nodded. Sonea reached out a hand to her. Whatever force
Sonea or Regin had kept her arms xed against her body with was
removed and the woman’s shoulders relaxed. Tentatively, she
reached out to take Sonea’s hand. The two of them walked over to
Regin. Everyone in the room breathed a sigh of relief. Skellin looked
pleased, Cery noted. Sonea and Regin looked grim but also relieved.
Forlie …
Cery frowned, then walked over to the woman and tugged o her
hood. He felt a shock as he saw her face.
“This isn’t her. This isn’t the rogue.”
There was a pause, then Skellin coughed. “Of course it is. She used
magic, didn’t she?” He looked at Sonea and Regin.
“She did,” Regin agreed.
“Then there must be two rogues,” Cery said. “It might’ve been
dark when I saw her, but Forlie doesn’t look anything like the
woman I saw doing magic.”
“She has dark skin and she is the right age. You only saw her from
above. How can you be so sure?”
“The shape of her face is all wrong.” The woman’s skin was
lighter, too. She had Lonmar bloodlines, he guessed, and their
typical physique. But the woman he’d seen in the pawnshop had an
entirely di erent build. “She’s too tall.” And too meek to my
family’s killer.
“You didn’t tell me this before,” Skellin pointed out.
Cery looked at him. “I guess I didn’t think it was worth going into
detail, if there was only one woman using magic in the city.”
“It would have been useful to know.” For a moment a scowl
crossed Skellin’s face, then he sighed and shrugged. “Well, I guess
it’ll still be useful. You can identify the other one for us.”
Looking at Sonea, Cery saw she was shaking her head in dismay.
He remembered how concerned she was that she might be
discovered wandering about the city without permission. Once she
brought this rogue to the Guild, they would know she’d de ed their
restrictions.
“Is this going to be a problem for you?” he asked.
“We’ll make sure it isn’t,” Regin replied rmly. “But it may be a
problem for you. Once word gets out that we have caught this w—”
He glanced at the woman. “Forlie,” he corrected. “The other rogue
will be more cautious. She will not be so easy to nd.”
“Not that she was in the rst place,” Skellin added.
Regin looked at the Thief. “Will you assist us again?”
“Of course,” Skellin smiled.
As the magician’s gaze shifted to him, Cery bowed. “As always.”
“Then we’ll be waiting for your next message,” Sonea said. “In the
meantime, we need to get back to the Guild as quickly as possible.”
Her eyes itted away. Following her gaze, Cery saw that the light of
dawn was ltering through windows all around the room.
“Yes. Go,” Skellin said. He waved a hand dismissively at the three
men still standing over by the crates, watching with bemused
expressions. “Continue your work,” he said to them. “Now, let me
escort you out,” he said to the magicians. “Come this way.”
Forlie said nothing as she walked with the magicians and Thieves.
They backtracked down the stairs, along the wide corridor, and into
the room they’d spent most of the night in. The magicians retrieved
their coats and stepped into the alley outside. Skellin wished them
all well and said he would be in contact as soon as he had
something to tell them. At the end of the alley, Cery stopped.
“Good luck and all that,” he said to Sonea. “I’ll be in touch.”
She smiled. “Thanks for your help, Cery.”
He shrugged, then turned away and strode to where Gol was
waiting, concealed in the shadows of a doorway opposite the old
butchery building.
“Who was that?” the big man asked, stepping out to meet Cery.
“Black Magician Sonea and Lord Regin.”
“Not them.” Gol rolled his eyes. “The woman.”
“The rogue.”
“No she isn’t.”
“Not our rogue. Another one.”
“You’re joking with me?”
Cery shook his head. “Wish I was. Seems we’re still on the hunt for
our rogue. I’ll explain later. Let’s get home. It’s been a long night.”
“Sure has,” Gol muttered. He looked back. Following his gaze,
Cery saw that Regin and Sonea were still standing by their cart.
“That’s odd. Sonea was in a hurry to get back,” Cery said.
“This whole thing has been odd from the start,” Gol complained.
He’s right, Cery thought. And nothing more odd than Forlie herself.
The way she looked at Skellin when Sonea asked her a question … as if
looking to him for instruction.
There was no doubt about it. Something wasn’t right. But they had
caught a rogue magician. Maybe not the rogue magician he
suspected had something to do with the death of his family, but at
least there was one less rogue available for hire by unscrupulous
characters like himself. Life in the city’s underworld was dangerous
enough without magicians hiring themselves out.
Though it would be handy having one to call on now and then. It might
make nding my family’s killer a lot easier.
One thing he was sure of, though. The other rogue would not be so
easy to catch.
When she had nally left Skellin, Sonea had simultaneously wanted
to scream in frustration and cheer in relief.
By now, not only could Dannyl have found Lorkin, she’d thought, but
there could have been a battle, funerals for the dead arranged, and a
victory celebration held. Osen must have progressed from wondering
where I am to discovering I haven’t been at the hospice all night to
ordering Kallen to start strengthening himself ready to hunt me down.
And all for nothing. Well, not nothing. They had found one rogue.
Just not the one they were looking for.
But at least she was away from Skellin, she’d reasoned, and
headed back to the Guild at last. Then something happened that
negated all her desire to rush back for news. She’d heard Lorkin’s
voice in her mind. And felt hints at what he’d been feeling.
It had been very enlightening.
She’d forgotten how e ective a blood ring could be at conveying
the mind of the wearer. In a short time she had not only learned
that Lorkin was alive, but that he did not fear for his life and was
full of hope. Though he was not entirely certain how the people he
was with would treat him, in general he respected them and
believed they were benevolent. He was smitten with the woman
who had rescued him, but the obligation he felt toward her was not
entirely based on lust or fondness.
Ah, Lorkin. Why does there always have to be a woman involved?
Lorkin was as safe as she could hope, considering the situation.
She’d rather he was home, and she did not like the possibility these
Traitors would not let him leave their city, but he had decided to
risk that and there was nothing she could do to stop him.
At least he’s a long way from the people who tried to kill him.
She’d got into the cart feeling much better. But before they had
travelled far, Forlie had begun to groan and hold her head and
stomach. A quick check told Sonea the woman was particularly
susceptible to carriage sickness, so they had been forced to tell the
driver to slow down.
She wondered if Lorkin had met Dannyl yet. And if Osen was now
looking for her, to tell her the good news.
The cart slowed even further. Outside, someone was shouting, and
the driver began shouting back. Sonea exchanged a frown with
Regin as the vehicle stopped. Forlie began to whimper with fear.
They all jumped as someone began hammering on the side of the
cart.
“Black Magician Sonea,” someone called. A young woman, Sonea
guessed. “You have to come out. You’ve got the wrong woman.”
Sonea moved to the rear ap of the cart’s cover. She pulled it
aside. The street beyond was empty but for a few people in the
distance. A knocking came from the side of the cart again.
“I work for Cery,” the woman said. “I—”
“We know she’s the wrong rogue,” Sonea called out. “Cery told
us.”
A slim young woman appeared, hurrying around the cart to scowl
at Sonea.
“Then … you didn’t … you don’t know …” The girl stopped and
took a deep breath. “You’re letting the other rogue go, then?”
Sonea stared at her. “Not if I can help it.”
“Well … I know where the real rogue is. I was watching you and
Cery from the roof of one of the other buildings and saw her turn up
to do the same. I think she’s still there.”
Regin uttered an oath. Sonea turned to look at him.
“Go,” he said. “I’ll get Forlie to the hospice and come back.”
“But …” But what if the woman has already left? My absence from the
hospice might not have been noticed. If it hasn’t, I’ll be able to keep
hunting for her. But if I get out of the cart and I’m seen …
“You should go,” she told Regin. “If I go and I’m recognised, the
Guild will stop me hunting for h—”
“You must be the one to catch her.” Regin stared at her, his gaze
intense and his expression unexpectedly angry. “People need to see
you do it. They need to remember that you’re more than a Healer.
That restricting you to that is a waste.” He pointed out of the cart.
“Go! Before she gets away!”
Sonea stared at him for a moment, then pulled the ap wide and
jumped out onto the road. Her coat ared open and the young
woman’s eyes widened as she saw the black robes beneath. Sonea
took the hint and buttoned the coat up. “What’s your name?”
“Anyi.” The girl straightened. “Follow me.” The girl broke into a
jog, heading back toward the old butchery.
“Have you told Cery?” Sonea asked.
The girl shook her head. “I couldn’t nd him.”
They moved into a maze of alleys, jogging from shadow to
shadow. Sonea realised her heart was beating fast with a strange
mix of long-forgotten excitement and something more primal. I’m
like a hunter about to catch its prey, she thought. Then she
remembered how it had felt to be hounded and frightened, sought
by powerful magicians, and she sobered. Still, this woman is no
untrained child. Why was she watching us? Did she know about Skellin’s
trap?
She must have known about it. How had she found out? Had she sent
Forlie in her place? Close to the old butchery, Anyi entered an
alleyway. At the far end Sonea could see a busy main road.
“She was on the roof of this building,” she said. “There’s a spot out
of sight around here where you can climb up—”
The girl had been about to dive into a small, dead end side alley,
but suddenly checked her stride then backed away from the
entrance.
“That’s her!” she hissed, pointing.
Her nger pointed upward. Sonea looked up, caught a movement
and felt a chill run down her spine. She drew magic and threw up a
shield around them. A woman was slowly levitating down into the
side alley. She disappeared into the shadows.
“Can you trap her in there?” Anyi asked.
The sound of footsteps suddenly broke out, coming rapidly closer.
“Only one way to nd out,” Sonea replied. She looked at Anyi.
“Go back. When Regin returns, bring him here. I might need
assistance.”
Anyi nodded and raced away. Sonea adjusted her shield to allow
the girl out. When she turned back, the woman was about to emerge
from the side alley.
Sonea stepped forward and threw up a barrier to block the
woman’s way.
Surprise, shock and dismay crossed the woman’s dark face. Then
her strange, angular eyes narrowed. A force hammered against the
barrier. It was no test strike, but a full blast that was stronger than
Sonea expected, and at the same time another strike ashed toward
her. The barrier wavered and fell before she had a chance to
strengthen it.
The woman dashed out of the dead end alley and ran toward the
main road. Sonea ran after her, throwing out another, stronger
barrier to envelop her, but the woman smashed this down with a
violent blast. A moment later, the rogue was among the people
moving up and down the road beyond.
Sonea reached the alley entrance. She saw the woman pause and
turn to look at her, well within the ow of tra c. Seeing the
distinctive red-brown skin, she knew why Cery had been so sure
that Forlie was not the woman he’d seen. As Skellin’s face ashed
through Sonea’s memory, she felt a chill run down her spine. Same
reddish dark skin. Same strange eyes. This woman is of the same race!
A smile stretched the woman’s lips. A dangerous, triumphant
smile.
She thinks I won’t dare use magic with all these people around, and she
is right. I also don’t want to risk harming her. Though it would certainly
make matters simpler for the Guild if the woman got herself killed.
To deserve that fate, she’d have to do much worse than be a rogue
magician working for roet-sellers as a blackmailer. Like killing
Cery’s family.
We need her alive to nd out if she’s guilty or knows who is. We also
need her alive so we can nd out where she came from, and if there are
more magicians like her. And nd out why she was watching us catch
Forlie.
And it would be much harder for Sonea to gain forgiveness for not
obeying rules if her disobedience had led to her killing someone.
Sonea drew magic. Lots of magic. She had no idea how long she
could hold the woman for. Despite knowing how to take power from
magicians and people and even animals, and store it away until
needed, Sonea had not done so for over twenty years. She was
forbidden to unless ordered to do so by the Higher Magicians.
She was no more powerful than she had been before she had
learned black magic. No more powerful than she had been as a
novice.
But she had been an exceptionally powerful novice.
With the magic she had gathered, Sonea sent power over the
heads of the people passing between her and the rogue, and
surrounded the woman in a globe of force. At once the woman
began striking in all directions, but though her attacks were
powerful, Sonea had expected them to be so, and kept the
containment barrier strong. The ash and vibration of magic sent
people scattering away from the woman. Sonea shrugged out of the
old coat and tossed it aside. When people recovered enough to stop
and watch, she did not want them wondering why she had been
wearing it.
The black cloth of her robes stirred in a breeze as she stepped out
of the alley entrance and walked toward the rogue. She heard
exclamations, from either side, where crowds of onlookers were no
doubt gathering, but kept her attention on the woman. The rogue
snarled and increased her attack on the barrier. Sonea strengthened
it further, trying not to worry at how rapidly she was using her
reserves of magic.
How long can I keep this up? How long can she keep it up?
A sound broke out from either side. Sonea did not realise what it
was at rst, then as she did her concentration nearly faltered from
amazement.
The crowd was cheering.
Through the sound came a di erent sort of shout. In the corner of
her eye she saw someone approaching. Someone wearing purple.
“Need some help?” a young male voice asked.
An Alchemist. Not one she knew, however.
“Yes,” she said. “Come through.”
Letting him into her barrier, she held out a hand to him.
“Send me your magic.”
“The old-fashioned way?” he asked, surprise in his voice.
She laughed. “Of course. I think we can manage one rogue
between us.”
He took her hand, and she felt magic ow into her. She channelled
it to the containment barrier. The Alchemist called out, and she
realised another magician was approaching. This time a Healer. As
the woman took Sonea’s other hand, Sonea almost expected the
rogue to give up. But the foreign woman fought on.
Yet her strikes were growing weaker and weaker. Sonea felt an
unexpected pity as the woman threw all her strength at the barrier
until her attack nally faltered. The rogue’s shoulders drooped. She
looked haggard and resigned.
Letting go of her fellow magicians’ hands, Sonea glanced at them.
“Thank you.”
The Alchemist shrugged, and the Healer murmured something like
“of course.” Sonea turned her attention back to the rogue. She
closed the distance between them, taking slow measured strides.
The Alchemist and Healer paced beside her, staying within her
shield. The rogue regarded Sonea sullenly as she stopped before her.
“What is your name?” Sonea asked.
The woman did not answer.
“Do you know the law regarding magicians in the Allied Lands?
The law that states that all magicians must be a member of the
Magicians’ Guild?”
“I know it,” the woman replied.
“Yet here you are, a magician who is not a member of the Guild.
Why is that?”
The woman laughed. “I don’t need your Guild. I learned magic
long before I came to this land. Why should I bow to you?”
Sonea smiled. “Why indeed?”
The woman glowered.
“So,” Sonea continued. “How long have you lived within the Allied
Lands?”
“Too long.” The woman spat on the ground.
“If you don’t like it, why do you stay?”
The woman stared balefully at Sonea.
“What is the name of your homeland?”
The rogue’s lips pressed together stubbornly.
“Well, then.” Sonea brought the barrier around the woman in
closer. “Whether you like it or not, the Magicians’ Guild is bound by
law to deal with you. We’re taking you to the Guild now.”
Anger contorted the woman’s face and a new blast of power
pounded the barrier surrounding her, but it was a weak attack.
Sonea considered waiting until the woman tired, then decided
against it. She shrank the barrier around the woman, then used it to
nudge her to the centre of the road. She began pushing the rogue
rmly but gently forward. The Healer and Alchemist fell into step
beside her.
And in this way, through streets lined with curious onlookers, they
escorted the second rogue found that day to the Guild.
CHAPTER 28
QUESTIONS
T he blindfold over Lorkin’s eyes itched, but each of his arms was
being held by a Traitor.
“We’re stopping,” one of the women said, gently pulling him to a
halt. “Now we’re going up again.”
The other woman let his arm go and he took the opportunity to
scratch. He braced himself and felt his stomach lurch as they began
to rise. After several heartbeats he felt the unevenness of the ground
under his feet again. The woman tugged him into motion.
“Be careful, the ground slopes here. Duck your head.”
He felt a sudden coolness and guessed that they’d moved from
sunlight into shadows. That wasn’t all. There was moisture in the
air, and a faint smell of rotting vegetation or mould. His guide
stopped.
“There’s stairs now, descending. Four of them.”
He found the edge with his toe, then cautiously stepped
downward. The steps were wide and shallow, and from the way
sounds were echoing he had entered a cave or room. The trickle of
water came from a few strides away.
“It’s all at from here.”
That wasn’t strictly true, he could tell as he walked. The ground
was smooth, but there was a de nite gradual incline. He listened to
the sound of the group’s footsteps, and the ow of water. If they
made any turns, they were too large and slow for him to detect.
The sound of wind, vegetation rustling and distant voices came
from somewhere ahead. A few more strides and, from the way the
noise surrounded him, he knew he was now outside. He felt the
warmth of sunlight on his face and a breeze on his skin. He heard
someone say Savara’s name.
Without warning, the blindfold was removed and he found himself
blinking into the brightness of the midday sun. Before his eyes had
adjusted, the Traitor who had been guiding him tugged at his arm,
indicating he should continue walking.
Savara led the group, walking along a pathway beside tall,
swaying stalks. He realised this was the edge of a crop, the large
seed heads peeking out from the topmost leaves. The path ascended
steeply and he found himself staring out over a wide valley.
Steep cli walls rose on either side, meeting at the ends of the
valley. Fields lled the oor, each at a di erent height, like
disturbed tiles, but all level. The tiers of green stepped down to a
long, narrow lake at the valley’s lowest point. Not one corner wasted,
he thought. How else can they feed a whole city of people? But where
are the buildings?
A movement up on the nearest cli wall answered that question.
Someone was looking out of a hole in the rock face. A moment later
he realised that the entire wall was riddled with holes, from one end
of the valley to the other.
A city carved into the rock. He shook his head in wonder.
“It was already here when we found the valley,” a familiar voice
said, from beside him.
He looked at Tyvara in surprise. She had barely said a word to him
since they’d joined Savara’s group.
“Of course, we’ve made it much bigger,” she continued. “A lot of
the old part collapsed and had to be replaced sixty years after the
rst Traitors settled here.”
“How deep does it go?”
“Mostly it’s only one or two rooms deep. Think of it as a city half
the size of Arvice, but more elongated, and tipped on its side. We
have tremors here now and then, and parts collapse. Though we’ve
got a lot better at judging if the rock is safe before making new
rooms, then strengthening them with magic, people feel more
comfortable living close to the outside.”
“I can understand how they’d come to feel that way.”
He could see, now, that part of the base of the wall was broken by
sturdy archways, through which people were entering and leaving
the city. Elsewhere there were smaller, more widely spaced
openings. The arches suggested a formal, public entrance, and he
was not surprised when Savara headed for them.
But not long after, she was forced to stop. A crowd had begun to
gather. Many of the people were staring at him. Some were clearly
curious, but others looked suspicious. Some were glaring in anger,
but not just at him. Their attention was also on Tyvara.
“Murderer!” someone called out, followed by sounds of agreement
here and there. But a few people frowned at the accusation, and
some even voiced a protest.
“Move out of the way,” Savara ordered, her tone rm but not
angry.
The people blocking the path obeyed. Lorkin read respect in their
faces when they looked at Savara. She is de nitely a Traitor to get on
the good side of, he thought, as the group followed their leader to the
arches and into the city.
A wide but shallow hall supported by several rows of columns
spread before them.
“Speaker Savara,” a voice called. “I’m glad to see you’ve returned
safely.”
The voice belonged to a short, round woman, who was walking
toward them from the back of the hall. Her words had been spoken
in a lofty tone. Savara slowed to meet her.
“Speaker Kalia,” Savara replied. “Have the Table assembled?”
“All but you and I.”
Lorkin felt something nudge his arm. He looked down at Tyvara.
She mouthed something, but he could not make it out, so she leaned
closer.
“Other faction,” she whispered. “Leader.”
He nodded to show he understood, then gave the woman a closer
look. So this is the one who ordered me killed. She was older than
Savara, possibly older than his mother, if the roundness of her face
was smoothing out the lines a woman her age might normally have.
The sharpness of her eyes and the set of her mouth contradicted her
soft demeanour. They gave her a mean expression, he decided. But
maybe his perception was skewed by the knowledge she’d wanted
him dead. Maybe other people found her appealing and motherly.
Kalia’s gaze swept over the other members of Savara’s group and
her nose twitched. Lorkin realised that the slave garb he and some
of the others wore now looked out of place. Like the costume it is.
Savara turned to two of her companions.
“Take Tyvara to her room and guard the doors.”
They nodded, and as they looked to Tyvara she stepped forward to
join them. Without glancing at him or saying a word, she strode
away. Savara looked at another of her people.
“Find Evana and Nayshia and have them replace Ishiya and Ralana
as soon as possible.” She looked at the last two women. “Go. Get
some rest and proper food.”
As the women left, Savara turned to Lorkin. “I hope you’re ready
to answer a lot of questions.”
He smiled. “I am.”
But as she and Kalia fell into step either side of him, leading him
out of the hall and into a wide corridor, he realised he did not feel
ready. He knew that there was a queen here, but it was suddenly
clear that Tyvara and Chari had neglected to tell him how power
was divided below the level of royalty. He knew the women
anking him were Speakers, but he had no idea exactly how they
tted into the hierarchy, and he was feeling a fool for not asking.
Savara asked if a Table had been assembled. I’m guessing they don’t
mean furniture. They’re both part of it, so I assume it’s some sort of
group like the Higher Magicians. With someone directing the formalities
and ceremonies, as Administrator Osen does at Guild meets.
Light in the corridor was subdued, but bright enough to illuminate
the way. There was colour to it – colour that shifted and changed.
He looked around, seeking the source, and realised that it came
from bright points of light embedded into the roof.
Gemstones! Magical gemstones! He tried to make out their shape as
he passed, but they were too bright to look at directly. They left
spots oating before his vision, so he forced himself to avert his
eyes.
The corridor was not long, and Savara and Kalia led him through a
wide doorway into a large room. A curved stone table had been set
at one end. Four women sat along the length of it, with two empty
seats waiting. At the far end of the table sat a grey-haired woman,
who had the same tired look about her that Osen always seemed to
have.
She’s the Traitors’ version of the Administrator, I’d wager.
At the closer end was another chair, larger and studded with
gemstones, and empty. The rest of the room was a large wedge
shape, fanning out from the table. The oor had been carved into
steps, on which cushions had been neatly spaced. For an audience,
though there’s nobody here today.
Savara directed him to stand before the table, then she and Kalia
took their seats.
“Welcome, Lorkin of the Magicians’ Guild of Kyralia,” the tired
woman said. “I am Riaya, Director of the Table. These are Yvali,
Shaiya, Kalia, Lanna, Halana and Savara, Speakers for the Traitors.”
“Thank you for allowing me into your city,” he replied, bending in
a slight bow that he directed at them all.
“I understand you have come to Sanctuary willingly,” Riaya said.
“Yes.”
“Why?”
“Foremost, to speak in defence of Tyvara at her trial.”
“And why else?”
He paused to consider how to begin. “I understand that my father
made a promise to your people that he should not have. If I can, I
would like to settle that matter.”
The speakers exchanged glances. Some looked sceptical, others
hopeful.
“Is that your only other reason?”
Lorkin shook his head. “Though I was only an assistant to the
Guild Ambassador to Sachaka, I know that part of the role – part of
the reason for having Ambassadors in the rst place – is to seek and
maintain peaceful links with other peoples. The Traitors are a part
of Sachaka, so if we do not seek links with them we are neglecting
an important section of the country. Even the little I know about the
Traitors tells me that your values are more compatible with those of
the Allied Lands. You reject slavery, for instance.” He took a deep
breath. “If there is a chance that a bene cial link might be
established between us I feel obliged to explore the possibility.”
“What possible bene t would there be for us in such an alliance?”
Kalia asked, her tone full of disbelief.
Lorkin smiled. “Trade.”
Kalia gave a sharp, humourless laugh. “We’ve already sought
honest trade with your kind, and regretted it.”
“You refer, of course, to my father,” he said. “I was told that
Traitors agreed to teach him black magic in exchange for Healing
magic? Is that correct?”
The seven women frowned.
“Black magic?” Riaya repeated.
“Higher magic,” Lorkin explained.
“Then that is true,” Riaya said.
Lorkin shook his head. “Only the Higher Magicians of the Guild,
with permission from the leaders of the Allied Lands, could have
made that decision. It was not my father’s right to o er you such
knowledge.”
The women began to exclaim and speak all at once and, though
Lorkin could not make out what all of them said, the general
opinion was clear. They were angry, yet also puzzled.
“Why would he make the promise? Did he intend to break his
word?”
“It’s obvious why he did what he did,” Lorkin said. “He was—”
But Kalia and the woman beside her were still talking, agreeing
with each other – from the bits he caught – on how Kyralians
weren’t to be trusted.
“Let him speak,” Riaya said, her voice cutting across theirs. The
two women quietened. Kalia crossed her arms and looked at him
with haughty expectation.
“My father was desperate,” Lorkin reminded them. “He had been a
slave for many years. He knew his country was in danger. He
probably felt his personal honour did not matter in the face of his
country’s safety. And after years of … being a slave, how much
dignity would you have left?”
He stopped as he realised he was allowing too much emotion to
enter his words. “I have a question for you,” he said.
“You don’t get to ask us questions,” Kalia sneered. “You must wait
until—”
“I would like to hear this question,” Savara interrupted. “Would
anyone else?”
The rest of the women paused, then nodded.
“Go on, Lorkin,” Riaya urged.
“I was told your people had known my father was a slave for some
time before you o ered him this trade. Why did you wait until it
was of advantage to you to o er that help? Why did you require
such a high price for helping him, when you rescue your own people
from such tyranny all the time?”
His last words were drowned in protests.
“How dare you question our generosity!” Kalia shouted.
“He was a man and a foreigner!” another exclaimed.
“The queen’s only daughter died because of him!”
“And hundreds more could have been saved if he’d kept his word.”
His gaze slid across their angry faces and he suddenly regretted
speaking out. He needed to charm and woo these women, not anger
them. But then his eyes met Savara’s. He saw her nod approvingly.
“Will you give us what your father promised?” Kalia demanded.
Instantly, the women quietened. They stared at him intently. They
want Healing so badly, he thought. Why wouldn’t they? The desire to be
protected from injury, disease and death is a powerful one. But they
don’t realise how powerful the knowledge is. The advantage it gives over
an enemy. How it can be used to harm as well as help.
“I am not authorised to do so,” he told them. “But I am willing to
help you gain it, through negotiating an exchange with the Guild
and the Allied Lands.”
“An exchange?” Riaya frowned. “For what?”
“For something of equal value.”
“We gave you higher magic!” Kalia exclaimed.
“Yes, you gave my father black magic,” Lorkin pointed out. “It is
not new to the Guild, nor would they consider it a suitable exchange
for Healing.”
Lorkin had expected more protest at this, but the women had
fallen into thoughtful silence. Savara regarded him with narrowed
eyes. Was that suspicion he read in them?
“What do we have that would be considered of equal value?”
Riaya asked.
He shrugged. “I don’t know yet. I only just got here.”
Kalia sighed loudly. “There is no point wasting time and energy
fantasising about trades and alliances. Sanctuary’s location is a
secret. We can’t have foreigners coming and going, for trade or
otherwise.”
Riaya nodded. She looked at the women, then at Lorkin.
“We are not yet in a position to consider such matters as trade
with the Guild. Did Savara warn you that you would not be allowed
to leave if you came to Sanctuary?”
“She did.”
She turned to the speakers. “Do any of you see reason why this
law should not apply to Lorkin?”
All shook their heads. Even Savara, he noticed. He felt his stomach
sink.
“Do you accept this?” Riaya asked him.
He nodded. “I do.”
“Then you are now subject to the laws of Sanctuary. So you had
better nd out what they are and pay them the respect they deserve.
This meeting is over.” Riaya looked at Savara. “Since you brought
him in you are charged with ensuring he is obedient and useful.”
Savara nodded, then stood up and waved a hand to indicate he
should follow. As they walked out of the room, Lorkin felt a strange
gloom settle on him. He’d known there would be a price for
following Tyvara to Sanctuary. Though he was prepared to accept it,
a part of him still rebelled.
And then he remembered what Riaya had said. “We are not yet in a
position to consider such matters …” Not yet. That did not mean
“never.” It might take years for them to gather the strength and
courage to venture beyond their mountains, but they would have to,
if they wanted what the Allied Lands had to o er.
Although if they did steal gem magic from the Duna tribes, he found
himself thinking, then I had better be very careful they don’t try to do
something similar to me.
Anyi’s hand reached out to caress the ne leather of the carriage
seat, then trace the gold inlay set into the edge of the seat’s wooden
base. Looking down at the oor, Cery noted, with amusement, that
the Guild symbol – a Y within a diamond – had been created with
di erent inlayed timbers, all which had been polished to a rich
shine.
“We’re here,” Gol said, his voice hushed with awe.
Cery looked out of the window. The Guild gates were swinging
open. The carriage slowed as it passed through, then sped up again
to take them to the front of the University. It stopped before the
steps and the driver jumped down to open the door for them. As
Cery climbed out, a gure in black robes emerged from the building.
“Cery of Northside,” Sonea said, grinning at him.
“Black Magician Sonea,” he replied, bending in an exaggerated
bow. Her eyes crinkled with amusement. “This is Anyi,” he told her.
“And you know Gol.”
Sonea nodded at his daughter. “I didn’t realise you were that
Anyi,” she murmured. “But then, I hadn’t seen you since you were
no taller than my knees.”
Anyi bowed. “Let’s not spread that about,” she said. “I’m Cery’s
bodyguard, nothing more.”
“And that’s all that the Guild will know,” Sonea assured them.
Sonea looked up at Gol. “You’ve got no taller since the other day,
I’m glad to see.”
The man sketched a hasty bow. He opened his mouth and closed it
again, clearly too overwhelmed by his surroundings to think of a
witty reply.
“Come inside.” Sonea beckoned and started climbing the steps.
“Everyone is looking forward to hearing your stories.”
Catching the dryness of her tone, Cery looked at her closely. He
had been both pleased and dismayed by her summons to the Guild
to identify the rogue, but she’d assured him that she had only
referred to him as an old friend. There was a chance some of the
older magicians would remember him from twenty years before,
and knew he’d become a Thief but it was a slim one. But it was
worth the risk if it meant his family’s murderer was found.
He also understood she was worried that the Guild would restrict
her freedom more now they knew she had been roaming about the
city without permission. The fact that she’d been associating with a
Thief would not make things any better for her, despite the fact that
this was no longer against any Guild rules.
While the hunt for the rogue was over, the matter was hardly
settled as far as the Guild was concerned.
“How has the meeting gone so far?” he asked.
“There has been lots and lots of arguing,” she began.
“Of course.”
“Worse than usual. I always suspected that if a magician from
beyond the Allied Lands wanted to live in one of our countries it
would bring our laws into question. But I always assumed it would
be a Sachakan magician.”
“Has the rogue told you anything about where she came from?”
“No. She’s refusing to speak. So is Forlie, though I think that’s
more out of fear than stubbornness.”
They reached the top of the stairs and she led them through the
entry hall full of impossibly delicate spiralling staircases that Cery
remembered from his last visit, over twenty years before. Gol and
Anyi both gazed around, their mouths open in astonishment, and
Cery had to smother a chuckle. Sonea did not hesitate, but led them
into a wide corridor. This nished at the huge Great Hall that
contained the old building that was the Guildhall. A building within
a building. Cery didn’t think Gol and Anyi’s mouths could open any
wider.
“Will you read her mind?” Cery asked Sonea.
“I expect we will eventually. That’s part of what the arguing has
been about. Since we don’t know anything about the place she came
from we don’t know if reading her mind without her permission
would be taken as an unforgivable abuse.”
“But you can’t nd out where she came from without reading her
mind,” Anyi said.
“No.”
“And that’s why we’re here. You need proof she did something
illegal.”
Sonea had reached the doors of the Guildhall, which were slowly
opening. She looked at Anyi and smiled crookedly.
“Yes. More than just using magic in self defence.”
As the doors swung wide, Cery caught his breath. The hall was full
of magicians. It was a sight he suspected few non-magicians could
see and not feel awed and intimidated. Especially when they
considered all the magical power these magicians held.
Looks like they’re doing a good job of replacing the numbers they lost
during the Ichani Invasion, he noted. The tiered seats on either side
were full, but the rows of chairs in the centre of the room were
empty. Which are for the novices, he recalled. That’s good. There’s
likely to be more people from the low end of town among them, who
might recognise me.
Sonea strode forward, black robes swirling. Following her, Cery
glanced at Gol and Anyi, walking on either side of him. Both were
averting their eyes from the watching magicians, keeping their gaze
xed on the scene ahead of them.
A magician in blue robes stood waiting at the far end of the room.
The Administrator. This was a di erent man to the one Cery
remembered wearing those robes long ago, before the Ichani
Invasion. He was older than that man had been.
Behind the Administrator were more tiered seats. The Higher
Magicians. Cery examined the faces. Some looked familiar, some did
not. He recognised Rothen, the magician who had guided Sonea
through her early years in the University. The old man met Cery’s
gaze and nodded once.
Two women stood before the Higher Magicians. Cery recognised
Forlie, who looked frightened out of her wits. The other woman
turned to see who was approaching and Cery felt his heart skip.
Yes, that’s her.
As she glared at him, Cery’s blood went cold. In the dim light of
the pawnshop attic, he hadn’t seen her too clearly, though enough
to recognise her when he saw her the next time. And when he’d
seen her in the street outside the shop, it had been at a distance. But
here, under the bright glow of many magical globe lights, he noticed
something he’d not had the opportunity to see before.
She had the same strange eyes as Skellin’s. They were of the same
race.
That’s not something the Guild needs to know, he decided. Skellin
would not appreciate me directing the Guild’s attention in his direction.
Though I doubt Sonea failed to notice the similarity. She probably hasn’t
told anyone because that would mean revealing she had enlisted the help
of a Thief …
As Sonea stopped before the Higher Magicians, Cery, Anyi and Gol
bowed. She introduced him and his bodyguards and explained that
Cery was the friend she had spoken of, who had rst seen the
foreign rogue and brought the matter to her attention. As she
nished, the Administrator looked at Cery.
“Firstly, the Guild o ers its thanks for your assistance in capturing
these rogue magicians,” he said. “Secondly, we thank you for
helping us today.” He gestured to the two women. “Do you
recognise either of these women?”
Cery turned to Forlie. “I had not seen Forlie until a few days ago,
when she was caught.” He gestured to the other woman. “This one I
saw a few months ago. Gol and I were after a murderer, and the
clues we’d got led us to spy on a shop owner and his customer – this
woman. We saw her use magic to open a safebox.”
The rogue was still staring at him, and as his gaze shifted to her
she narrowed her eyes.
“Do you think this woman is the murderer you sought?”
Cery shrugged. “I don’t know. Magic was used in the murder. She
has magic. But I have no proof that it was her.”
The Administrator’s attention moved to Gol. “You were there the
night your employer spied on this woman.”
Gol nodded. “I was.”
“Was it as he described? Were there any details you noticed that
he didn’t?”
“He got it straight,” the big man said.
Now the Administrator looked at Anyi. “And were you there?”
“No,” she replied.
“Have you observed this woman performing magic?”
“Yes. I rst put eyes on her an hour or so before S— … Black
Magician Sonea caught her. She was watching Forlie being caught. I
thought it a bit odd. Then I saw her using magic to kill some birds
that were making so much noise ghting they might’ve drawn
attention to her. I knew she had to be a rogue, too, so I went to get
Black Magician Sonea.”
The Administrator looked thoughtful, then regarded Cery, Anyi
and Gol in turn. “Is there anything else you can tell us about either
of these women?”
“No,” Cery replied. He glanced at his daughter and bodyguard.
They were shaking their heads.
The Administrator turned to regard the Higher Magicians. “Any
questions?”
“I have one,” the magician in white robes said. He must be the
High Lord, Cery recalled. Sonea had told him the High Lord’s robes
had been changed to white after it was decided the Black Magicians
should, logically, wear black. “Have you ever seen anyone with the
same physical characteristics as this woman?” The man gestured
toward the rogue. “Aside from her gender, of course.”
“Maybe once or twice,” Cery replied.
“Do you know where those people came from?”
Cery shook his head. “No.”
The magician nodded, then waved a hand at the Administrator to
indicate he had no more questions. Relieved, Cery found he was
looking forward to leaving this place. He might be a powerful man
in the city’s underworld, but he was not used to being scrutinised by
so many people. A Thief works best unnoticed. Better to be known by
reputation than by being the centre of attention.
“Thank you for your assistance, Cery of Northside, Anyi and Gol,”
the Administrator said. “You may now leave.”
Sonea ushered them out again. Once the Guildhall doors had
closed behind them, Cery let out a sigh of relief.
“Did that help?” Anyi asked.
Sonea nodded. “I think it will. They now have witness accounts of
the woman breaking the law. The only magic she used within sight
of magicians was arguably in her defence, when I captured her and
took her to the Guild.”
“So if she has broken the law it is excusable to read her mind?”
“It was already.” Sonea smiled grimly. “But now they won’t feel so
bad about it.”
“Will you do it?” Cery asked.
Her smile vanished. “It’ll either be me or Kallen. I suspect they’ll
choose Kallen, since he’s had much less involvement in the search
and hasn’t been disobeying rules.”
Cery frowned. “Are they going to give you trouble for that?”
“I don’t think so,” she said, her brow creasing with worry. “Kallen
doesn’t seem too pleased. He hasn’t had the time to raise the matter
so far, but he will eventually. Nobody else has brought it up, but I’m
sure someone will.” She sighed and took a step back toward the
hall. “I had better return. I’ll let you know what happens.” She
paused, then smiled. “Oh, and Lorkin contacted me. He’s alive and
well. I’ll tell you all about it another time.”
“Great news!” Cery said. “See you then.”
She waved, then pushed one of the doors open wide enough to slip
through. Cery looked from Anyi to Gol. “Let’s see if the carriage is
waiting for us.”
They grinned, and followed as he set o back to the front of the
University.
When Achati, Dannyl, the other Ashaki and Unh reached the road,
they found that the slaves they had sent ahead had the carriage and
horses ready and waiting for them. The Ashaki helpers turned to
face Dannyl and bid him farewell.
“You have our sympathy,” one of them said. “It must be annoying
to have your assistant seduced away from you.”
“Yes,” Dannyl replied. “But at least I know he went willingly and
is in no danger – or doesn’t believe himself to be. And … I apologise
for his behaviour again. He led you all into danger unnecessarily.”
Another shrugged. “It was worth it for the chance to nally
attempt to do something about them, or nd their base, even if it
led to nothing.”
“But … surely you could not have followed the Traitors much
further without them being forced to kill you,” Dannyl said.
The Ashaki exchanged glances, and suddenly Dannyl understood
their apparent lack of concern. They did not want to admit that they
had been hopelessly outnumbered, or had failed in their task, so
they pretended otherwise. In truth they had been well aware and
fearful of the risk they had been taking. It would be rude to make
them say so aloud, however.
“Well, Ashaki Achati tells me we got further into their territory
than anyone has managed to go before,” he said, putting pride and
admiration into his tone.
The Ashaki smiled and nodded.
“If you change your mind about retrieving your assistant, let us
know,” the more talkative of them told him. “The king would not
have much trouble gathering together a small army for the purpose.
We are always looking for an excuse to weed them out.”
“That is good to know,” he assured them. “And much
appreciated.” He turned to look at Unh. “I know he has good
trackers to call upon, too.”
The tribesman inclined his head slightly, but remained
expressionless. The Sachakans said nothing, then the quieter of them
cleared his throat. “What do you think the Guild will do about Lord
Lorkin?”
Dannyl shook his head. “I don’t know,” he admitted. “But they’ll
have to send me a new assistant. Hopefully they’ll be better at
choosing one than I was.”
The Sachakans chuckled. Then the talkative Ashaki rubbed his
hands together. “We had all best be on our way, then.”
So farewells were uttered and the Sachakans rode away. Unh
nodded once at Dannyl, which was somehow more meaningful a
farewell than the Sachakans’. The group’s passing stirred up dust as
they left. Dannyl and Achati climbed into the carriage and Achati’s
two slaves took their positions on the outside. The vehicle jolted
into motion, and began swaying gently as it rolled along the other
road.
“Now this is better,” Achati said. “Comfort. Privacy. The promise
of regular baths.”
“I’m de nitely looking forward to a bath.”
“I suspect our helpers are as keen to get home, despite the fact
that they didn’t get a chance to rid Sachaka of a few Traitors.”
Dannyl winced. “I apologise again, for causing so much discomfort
and risk for no reason.”
“It wasn’t for no reason,” Achati corrected. “You were obliged to
search; I was obliged to help you. A young man could have been in
danger. The fact that he wasn’t made our journey no less
important.”
Dannyl nodded in gratitude for the Sachakan’s understanding. “I
suppose I’m apologising on Lorkin’s behalf. I’m sure if he’d been
able to tell us of his decision earlier he would have.”
“He may not have decided what he was going to do until just
before he spoke to you.” Achati shrugged. “It was not a wasted trip.
In fact, it has been educational, both in how Kyralians think and
how you think. I made assumptions about your determination to
nd your assistant, for example. I thought it might … go beyond
mere loyalty to a fellow magician and Kyralian.”
Dannyl looked up at Achati in surprise. “You thought we were
…?”
“Lovers.” The man’s expression was serious now. He looked away.
“My slave is young, good-looking and quite talented. He adores me.
But it is the adoration a slave feels for a good master. I envied you
your assistant.”
Unable to stop himself staring at Achati in surprise, Dannyl
searched for an appropriate answer and found none. Achati
chuckled.
“Surely you knew this much about me.”
“Well … yes, but I’ll admit I was a bit slow to notice.”
“You were preoccupied.”
“I gather you weren’t making any great assumption about me?”
Achati shook his head. “We make sure we know everything we can
about the Ambassadors the Guild sends our way. And your choice of
companions isn’t exactly a secret in Imardin.”
“No,” Dannyl agreed, thinking of Tayend and his parties.
Achati sighed. “I can buy myself a companion – in fact I have done
so many times. Someone beautiful. Someone well trained in pleasing
a master. I might perhaps nd someone intelligent and witty enough
to converse with, even be lucky enough to be loved by that slave.
But there is always something lacking.”
Dannyl watched Achati closely. “What is that?”
The man’s mouth twisted into a lopsided smile. “Risk. Only when
you know the other could easily leave you, do you appreciate when
he stays. Only when it’s not easier on them to like you than not, do
you appreciate it when they do.”
“An equal.”
Achati shrugged. “Or near enough. For a companion to be truly
equal to me would restrict my choices too much. As the king’s envoy
I am one of the most powerful men in the country, after all.”
Dannyl nodded. “I’ve never had to consider such di erences in
status. Though I suppose I might have, if my companion was a
servant.”
“But a servant can leave.”
“Yes.”
“Do servants make good conversation?”
“I suppose some might.”
Achati exed his shoulders, then relaxed. “I enjoy our
conversations.”
Dannyl smiled. “That’s just as well. You’ve only got me to talk to
between here and Arvice.”
“Indeed.” The other man’s eyes narrowed. “I think I’d enjoy more
than just conversation with you.”
Once again, Dannyl was speechless. Surprise was followed by
embarrassment, then was overtaken by curiosity, and not a little
attery. This Sachakan – who had just pointed out he was one of the
most powerful men in the country – is actually propositioning me! What
should I do? How do you turn someone like him down without being
impolite or causing a political repercussion? Do I even want to?
He felt a shiver go down his spine. He’s younger than me, but not by
many years. He’s good-looking in a Sachakan kind of way. He’s good
company. He’s nice to his slaves. But oh, such a liaison would be
politically dangerous!
Achati chuckled again. “I don’t expect anything of you,
Ambassador Dannyl. I only express a view. And a possibility.
Something to think about. For now let’s keep to conversations. After
all, I would hate to have ruined our friendship by suggesting
anything that you are uncomfortable with.”
Dannyl nodded. “As I said, I’m a bit slow.”
“Not at all.” Achati grinned. “Otherwise I wouldn’t like you so
much. You’ve been preoccupied. Focused on one goal. That
distraction is gone. You can think of other things. Like how long it
will take for the Guild to choose and send you a new assistant.”
“I’m not sure anyone will be willing to volunteer for the position,
after what happened to Lorkin.”
Achati chuckled. “You may be surprised. Some might come in the
hopes of being snatched away to a secret place ruled by exotic
women.”
Dannyl groaned. “Oh, I hope not. I certainly hope not.”
CHAPTER 29
ANSWERS, AND MORE QUESTIONS
S onea sat back in her seat and waited for the Higher Magicians to
stop procrastinating.
She had tried to prevent bringing Cery into the Guild, but once it
was known that others had helped her and Regin nd the rogues,
the Guild’s habit of exploring all sides to a situation had made it
unavoidable. She had told them Cery was an old friend, not that he
was a Thief. A few might make the connection to a Thief named
Cery who had helped her and Akkarin during the Ichani Invasion,
but most would have forgotten that detail in history. Those that
preferred to ignore her part in the defeat of the invaders wouldn’t
have paid attention to the names of her helpers, and the few who
didn’t understood, she hoped, why she wanted to avoid too much
attention being drawn to her old friend.
It was only Kallen, who paid too much attention to her already,
who might make the connection and speak of it. But he was, if
anything, discreet. He would not announce it to the entire Guild. He
would consult with other Higher Magicians.
What annoyed Sonea was that bringing Cery in had proved
nothing they didn’t already know. The woman was obviously a
rogue. She had used magic in front of hundreds of people, including
the Alchemist and Healer who had helped Sonea capture her. She
had also used it in a vain attempt to resist the magicians who had
taken her to her temporary prison, the Dome.
But the Guild, and most likely the king, were worried about
o ending a foreign land. Especially when they weren’t sure which
land they might be o ending.
Earlier in the meeting, an advisor of the king had brought maps
and described some of the distant lands on them. The woman
remained silent, refusing to answer when asked where she was
from. The advisor had made a few guesses based on her appearance.
If he was right, she made no sign.
“I cannot see any other option,” High Lord Balkan said, and there
was a note of nality in his tone. “We must read her mind.”
Administrator Osen nodded. “Then I call on Black Magician Kallen
and Black Magician Sonea to descend to the oor. Black Magician
Kallen will read the mind of the unnamed rogue and Black Magician
Sonea will read Forlie’s mind.”
Though she had been expecting this, Sonea felt a brief
disappointment. There were many answers she would like to have
from the foreign woman that she couldn’t ask Kallen to search for.
Like whether the woman had killed Cery’s family.
Following Kallen down the stairs, she kept her gaze on Forlie. The
woman had gone pale, and stared at Sonea with wide eyes.
“I’ll tell you everything,” Forlie blurted out. “You don’t have to
read my mind.”
“Stupid woman,” a strangely accented voice said. “Don’t you know
they can’t read your mind if you don’t want them to?”
Sonea turned to regard the foreign rogue, and realised that all of
the magicians had done the same. The woman glanced from face to
face, her expression changing as she read amusement and pity.
Doubt and then fear crept into her eyes as Kallen stopped in front of
her.
As he reached toward her, his arms were slapped away by magic.
Not wanting to watch the struggle, Sonea turned her attention
back to Forlie, who inched.
“I’m not a magician,” the woman said, looking from Sonea to the
Higher Magicians. “I was made to lie. They said …they said they’d
kill my daughter and her children if I told you.” She sucked in a
shuddering breath, then burst into tears.
Sonea put a hand on her shoulder. “Do you know where they are?”
“I … I think so.”
“They don’t know you have told us anything yet. We’ll go get your
children before they nd out.”
“Th-thank you.”
“I’m afraid I do have to check that you’re telling the truth. I
promise you, mind-reading doesn’t hurt. In fact, you won’t feel
anything. You won’t even know I’m there. And I’ll be as quick as I
can.”
Forlie stared at Sonea, then nodded.
Reaching out to gently touch the woman’s temples, Sonea sent her
mind forth. Fear and anxiety washed over her as she touched the
woman’s mind. She let herself waft into Forlie’s thoughts, which
were of her daughter and two grandchildren, and the men who had
taken them. Sonea recognised the man who had blackmailed Forlie
– he was the roet-seller who had been with Forlie when she was
captured.
Remembering that moment, Sonea recalled the magical force she’d
felt come from Forlie. Someone else must have sent it. Perhaps the
real rogue, watching them through the windows.
—Who used magic when we found you?
—I don’t know.
—Where are your daughter and grandchildren now?
A maze of alleys and makeshift houses ashed into Sonea’s mind,
then settled on one house in particular. Forlie’s family were in one
of the remaining poor areas of the city.
—We’ll nd them, Forlie. We’ll punish the people who did this.
Opening her eyes, Sonea withdrew her ngers. Forlie’s expression
was hopeful and determined now.
“Thank you,” she whispered.
Turning to the Higher Magicians, Sonea related what she had
learned. “I recommend that one or more of us go with Forlie to free
her children as soon as possible.”
There were many nods of agreement. A small noise drew their
attention to the foreign woman. Her face, caught between Kallen’s
hands, expressed a mixture of surprise and dismay.
All watched in silence, and when Kallen nally released her Sonea
heard a collective sigh of relief. Kallen stepped back, then turned to
face the Higher Magicians.
“Her name is Lorandra,” he announced. “She is from Igra, the land
beyond the great northern desert. It is a strange place, where all
magic is taboo and punishable by death. Yet those who watch for
and punish magicians are magicians themselves. They steal the
children of those they execute in order to maintain their numbers.”
He shook his head in amazement at this hypocrisy and cruelty.
“Lorandra learned magic as a young woman and was forced to ee
her country with her newborn son. They managed to cross the
desert to Lonmar, then travelled through Elyne to Kyralia. Here they
were taken in by a Thief, who protected them in exchange for
magical favours. The Thief eventually adopted the boy and made
him his heir. He trained the boy in crime, while his mother trained
him in magic.”
Kallen looked at Sonea and frowned.
“The son’s name is Skellin, one of the Thieves that Black Magician
Sonea and Lord Regin enlisted to help them nd the rogue. Of
course, he did not want them nding his mother, so he arranged for
Forlie to be caught in her place. He even used his own magic to
make it look as if she had attacked them.”
He looked back at the Higher Magicians. “Skellin has been sending
his mother out to kill o rival Thieves since he came to power.
Through murder and alliances he intended to make himself king of
the city’s underworld.”
Sonea’s heart skipped a beat. This woman is the Thief Hunter!
Kallen paused and his frown deepened. “And he imported roet to
help bind people to him. Not just the poor but the rich as well. And
magicians. He seemed to think we would be easy to manipulate
once we’d all been introduced to the drug.”
A murmur of voices rose as the magicians began to discuss what
they’d learned. Sonea caught dismissive remarks about Skellin’s
delusions, but a chill had run down her spine at the mention of roet.
She thought of Stoneworker Berrin, whose addiction she had tried
and failed to Heal away. If roet addiction could not be Healed, and
Skellin knew it, then his grand plan might have succeeded.
“What are you?” the foreign woman said. She was staring at
Kallen. Her eyes slid to Sonea. “And you?”
Sonea answered the question with a small smile. Skellin and his
mother were magicians, but clearly they weren’t black magicians.
That’s something to be grateful for. Hopefully we can assume Igra isn’t a
land of black magicians, too. We don’t need another Sachaka to worry
about.
Administrator Osen now turned to face the hall and raised his
arms. Voices quietened to a near silence.
“We now know the truth. One of our captives is innocent, the
other is a murderess and a rogue. We have another rogue in our city
to nd and deal with. Lorandra will be imprisoned. Forlie is free to
go. Certain actions must be taken immediately, so I must end this
meeting now.”
The hall lled with the sound of hundreds of magicians standing
up and bursting into conversation. Osen strode over to Sonea.
“Take Forlie and nd her children quickly,” he ordered quietly.
“Before Lorandra thinks to inform Skellin of her betrayal.”
Sonea stared at him in surprise, then nodded. Of course. She only
has to communicate with him mentally to tell him what happened here.
“I’ll take Lord Regin as backup, if that is acceptable.”
He nodded. “I’ll send Kallen after Skellin once they’re safe.”
She felt her heart warm with appreciation. Osen might be cold
toward her, but he wasn’t a man without compassion for others. As
he walked away, she looked around the room and found Regin
standing by one of the stairs, watching her. She beckoned to him.
“Is that appropriate?”
Kallen’s voice reached her over the chatter and footsteps of the
Higher Magicians. She looked over to see him frowning at Osen.
“If you can rouse the support of the majority of Higher Magicians
to oppose her going in the next few minutes, I’ll consider sending
someone else.”
Kallen glanced at the magicians ling out of the building, then at
Sonea, and his lips thinned.
“It’s your decision,” he said. “Not mine.”
As Regin reached her side, Sonea smiled to herself, enjoying a
moment of triumph. If Osen now trusted her enough to send her
into the city, perhaps the rest of the Guild would forgive her for
breaking the rules so often in recent weeks.
“Care to assist me in my next assignment?” she asked Regin.
His eyebrows rose and he almost managed a smile. “Always.”
She hooked an arm around Forlie’s. “Let’s go nd your family.”
Lorkin was not completely sure how long had passed since he’d
been put in the room. It had no window, so he had no sunlight to
track the time of day. He’d shifted from travelling at night and
sleeping during the day when with Tyvara to the opposite when
travelling with Chari, so he couldn’t judge what time it was by when
he grew sleepy. Nor could he judge it by hunger, as he’d been eating
whenever opportunity came rather than at regular times.
The meals that were brought to him seemed to follow a pattern, so
he was counting the days that way. A simple meal of grainy sweet
mush and fruit was followed a few hours later by a larger meal with
meat and vegetables. Then after another interval a light meal of at
bread and a cup of warmed milk was served. It was basic food, but
wonderful after the scavenged fare he’d had for the weeks he’d been
travelling with Tyvara.
He’d been told he had to stay there until Tyvara’s trial. Two and a
half days had passed so far, he guessed. He’d kept himself
entertained by reading his notebook, and writing observations about
everything he had learned about the Traitors so far. He also listed
questions he would seek the answer to, when he was free to do so.
Each time food was brought, Lorkin glimpsed the Traitor keeping
guard on his door. Always a woman, but not always the same
woman. Were there no male magicians? Or none willing to guard
him? Or did they not trust a man to guard another man?
He’d spent a lot of time sleeping, too. Though he’d been able to
Heal away soreness and weariness, it was always better to let the
body regain its energy and health through natural means.
Light came from a gemstone set into the ceiling. He’d got a closer
look at it by standing on the bed. It was too bright to stare at for
long. He’d reached up to it, nding it didn’t give o any heat. The
surface was faceted, like stones in jewellery.
Had it naturally formed the shape, or had a human carved it?
Would it go on glowing forever, or eventually fade?
Unanswered questions were gradually stacking up in his mind and
his notebook.
He wondered how he was supposed to nd out about Sanctuary’s
laws, as Riaya had suggested. Was he meant to ask for someone to
teach him? What would happen if he knocked to get the guard’s
attention, then asked for a teacher?
He thought about that for some time. Before he could gather the
determination to try it, he heard voices outside. He sat up and
turned to face the door as it opened.
A woman he’d never seen before looked him up and down.
“Lord Lorkin,” she said. “You’re to come with me.”
The atmosphere in the city was di erent now, he noted. More
people were about, and many looked as if they were standing
around waiting for something. When they noticed him they stared at
him with curiosity, but the expectation in the air was clearly for
something else.
The trial of Tyvara? he wondered. Well, why else would they come
and get me?
His assumption was proved correct when they arrived at the same
room in which he’d met the Table of Speakers. The same seven
women were seated at the curved table, but this time the gem-
encrusted chair was occupied. An old woman sat there, watching
him thoughtfully.
The rest of the room was lled with people. The stepped seating
was full and many more men and women stood around the walls.
Opposite to the entrance was a smaller door that he hadn’t noticed
last time. Within it stood Tyvara and two other women. There was a
feeling about the room that this meeting had already been going for
some time. He wished he could tell how well it was going.
“You don’t bow to Queen Zarala,” his guide murmured into his
ear. “You put a hand to your chest and look at her until she nods at
you. Now, go stand in front of the Table and answer their
questions.”
He did as she instructed. The queen smiled and nodded as he
made the hand-over-heart gesture. Her attention shifted to Riaya.
“Lord Lorkin, former assistant to Guild Ambassador to Sachaka,
Dannyl,” the Director said, her voice lling the room. “You came to
Sanctuary in order to speak in Tyvara’s defence at this trial. That
time has come. Tell us how you came to meet Tyvara.”
“She was a slave at the Guild House.”
“Where you would have met Riva as well.”
“I didn’t meet Riva until the night she died.”
Riaya nodded. “How did Riva come to be in your room that
night?”
Lorkin bit his lip. “She slipped in while I was asleep.”
“And what did she do?”
“Woke me up.” He pushed aside reluctance at having to describe
how. “By getting into my bed and … er … being a lot nicer to me
than was required.”
A faint smile touched Riaya’s lips. “So you were not in the habit of
bedding slaves, then?”
“No.”
“But you didn’t send her away.”
“No.”
“What happened then?”
“The room lit up. I saw that Tyvara had stabbed Riva.”
“And then?”
“Tyvara explained how Riva had intended to kill me.” He felt his
face warm. “With a kind of magic I’d never heard of before. She said
if I stayed at the Guild House, others would attempt to assassinate
me.”
“You believed her?”
“Yes.”
“Why?”
“The other slave – Riva – said something.” He thought back. “She
said: ‘he has to die’. It was obvious that she was referring to me.”
Riaya’s eyebrows rose. She looked at the six women and the
queen, then turned back to Lorkin.
“What happened then?”
“We left and went to an estate – to the slave quarters. The slaves
there were helpful. But at the estate we went to next, the slaves had
set a trap for us. They tried to drug us. After that we didn’t trust
anyone – until we met Chari.”
Riaya nodded, then turned to the Table.
“Any questions for Lord Lorkin?”
The rst woman nodded. Lorkin recalled their names from the last
meeting. Yvali, I think. She xed Lorkin with a direct stare.
“Did you ever bed Tyvara?”
“No.”
A murmur went through the audience. It sounded like a protest,
Lorkin noted. Yvali opened her mouth to ask another question, then
thought better of it. She looked at the others.
“Did Tyvara kill anybody else while you were travelling together?”
Lanna asked.
“Not as far as I know.”
“Why did you not head for Kyralia?” Shaiya asked.
“Tyvara said that it was the obvious thing to do, so we’d nd
assassins waiting for us.”
“What did you give Ambassador Dannyl after you persuaded him
to stop following us?” Savara asked.
Lorkin looked at her in surprise, but not at the sudden change of
subject. If she had seen this, why hadn’t she asked him before now?
Her expression was impossible to read. He decided it would be best
to tell the truth.
“My mother’s blood ring. I knew it was likely it would be taken
from me when I got here, and I don’t think she would have liked it
falling into unfamiliar hands.”
A low murmur lled the room, but quickly subsided.
“Did you use it at any time after Tyvara killed Riva?”
“No. Tyvara didn’t know I had it … I think.” He resisted glancing
in her direction.
“Do you have any other blood rings?”
“No.”
Savara nodded to indicate she had no more questions.
“Will you consent to a mind-read to con rm the truth of your
words?” Kalia asked.
The room fell utterly silent.
“No,” Lorkin replied.
Muttered words and exhalations followed. He met Kalia’s gaze and
held it. How stupid does she think I am? If I let anyone read my mind
they’ll go looking for the secret to Healing, and then I can forget about
ever leaving this place.
No more questions came. Riaya exchanged glances with all of the
women at the table, then looked at Lorkin.
“Thank you, Lord Lorkin, for your cooperation. Please stand over
by the entrance.”
He nodded to her respectfully out of habit, then to the six women
and to the queen in case his gesture would be taken as giving
inappropriate favour to the Director. Spotting near the entrance the
guide who had taken him to the room, he walked over to stand by
her.
She eyed him thoughtfully, then nodded.
“That was well done,” she murmured.
“Thank you,” he replied. He looked across the room to Tyvara. She
was frowning, but as he met her gaze she gave him a strained smile.
“We will now deliberate,” Riaya announced.
As the eight women around the table began to talk, the audience
broke into noisy chatter. Lorkin tried to pick conversations out of
the voices, but could not make out more than the occasional phrase.
The leaders around the table had clearly set a magical barrier
against noise around themselves. So instead of listening, he
examined the people in the room in the hope of learning what he
could before he was returned to the windowless cell.
There were many couples sitting on the stairs, he noted, but all
others were women. Those standing around the walls were mostly
male, however. The clothing of all was simple. Some of the Traitors
were dressed in practical trousers and tunics, while others wore long
belted shifts in ner cloth. He was surprised to see that both women
and men wore these long shifts.
The colour of the cloth ranged from undyed to deep colours, but
none were vivid or bright. He guessed it was hard to bring dyes into
the city, and with limited space to grow crops, priority would be
given to plants that produced food.
Though he tried to keep his attention focused on the audience, he
could not help glancing at Tyvara from time to time. Every time he
did so, he found her watching him. She did not smile again,
however. She looked thoughtful. And worried.
Finally, Riaya’s voice rose over the noise in the room.
“We have nished deliberations,” she announced.
The room quietened. Riaya looked at the other women at the
table, then turned to regard Tyvara.
“You o ered to allow Speaker Halana to read your mind. We have
explored all other avenues as required by law, but I can see no other
way to con rm your claims. Please come forward and remove the
mind block.”
From the audience came low voices and whispers. Lorkin thought
back to a snippet of conversation between Chari and Tyvara, from
the journey into the mountains. Tyvara had said she would let the
Traitors read her mind. Chari had been shocked. “You can’t,” she
had hissed. “You promised …”
Promised what? To who? Lorkin watched as the woman who had
saved his life walked with head high to stand before her leaders. He
felt his heart lighten with a rush of sudden, giddy a ection. She is so
proud. So beautiful. Then he felt a familiar doubt and annoyance
spoil the moment. I wish I knew whether Chari is right or not about
Tyvara’s regard for me. If she is wrong I don’t want to make a fool of
myself trying to win over Tyvara. But if she is right … if Tyvara likes me
… but makes a habit of pushing away those who admire her … do I
have the determination to keep pursuing her?
Every part of him was sure he did.
Stopping in front of the Table, Tyvara held out her left hand. She
paused, then grimaced. Lorkin blinked in surprise and horror as
blood began to drip from her palm. She kneaded the base of her
thumb, then held up something too tiny for him to see. She let it
drop on the table.
I was right, he thought. The mind block is an object similar to a blood
gem.
The leaders wore expressions of grim sympathy. He watched
Halana stand up and reach out to Tyvara, who bent forward a little.
The older woman took hold of Tyvara’s head and closed her eyes.
A long pause followed in which all watched the pair expectantly.
When Halana drew her hands away at last, she said nothing. She sat
down. Tyvara picked up the mind block and backed away from the
table.
“What have you learned?” Riaya asked.
“Everything Tyvara has told us is true,” Halana said.
A collective sigh went through the room. Riaya placed her hands
on the table.
“Then it is time to cast our votes.” She looked at Tyvara, then the
audience. “We have concluded that Tyvara did not need to kill Riva.
She should have pushed Riva away from Lorkin, or otherwise
separated them. But we also acknowledge that there was no time,
upon discovery of the crime taking place, for deliberation. Tyvara
acted in order to ensure the wishes of the queen were met, and to
prevent a situation that might lead to a threat to Sanctuary and
increased danger to our people in Sachaka.” She paused and looked
at the Speakers. “Should Tyvara be executed for the murder of
Riva?”
Of the six women sitting behind the table, two held their hands
up. The rest held their hands out, palm facing downward. Lorkin
assumed that since Kalia had her hand up, that signal was for the
a rmative.
“Four against, two for,” Riaya said. She looked at the audience. To
Lorkin’s surprise, they were making one or the other gesture. “The
majority against,” Riaya declared. She looked to the queen, who
now held out her hand, palm down. “The answer is ‘no’.”
Hands dropped. Riaya looked pleased, Lorkin noted.
“The death of a fellow Traitor is a serious matter,” she continued.
“And no matter the reason for it, penalties must be applied. Tyvara
must remain in Sanctuary for the next three years, after which she
may take a position as scout or watcher and work to regain the
responsibilities she had before. During those three years she is to
dedicate one day of each six to the bene t of Riva’s family.” Riaya’s
gaze returned to Tyvara. “Do you accept this judgement?”
“Yes.”
“Then it is decided. You are free to go. This trial is concluded and
the laws of Sanctuary upheld. May the stones keep singing.”
“May the stones keep singing,” the audience replied.
The room lled with movement as all rose to their feet. Lorkin
watched Tyvara. She was looking at the oor. She gave a little shake
of her head, then looked up at Savara. The older woman smiled with
approval. Then one of her eyebrows rose in query and her gaze
shifted to Lorkin. He blinked, then saw Tyvara roll her eyes, turn
and stride to the door at the far side of the room. He could see Chari
standing there. The young woman was grinning. She looked across
to him and winked.
Someone tugged at his sleeve. The guide smiled at him.
“I’m to take you to your quarters next.” Her smile widened. “Your
new quarters.”
He felt his heart, in the process of sinking, lighten. “It wouldn’t
happen to have a window, would it?”
She gestured for him to follow her. “No. But you’ll have some
company, and you’re free to come and go as you please – so long as
you don’t leave Sanctuary, of course. I’m Vytra, by the way.”
“Pleased to meet you, Vytra.”
She chuckled. “You Kyralians have funny ways,” she said. “So
polite.”
“I can be rude if you want.”
She laughed. “That would be a shame. Now, on the way I should
give you a few tips on how to get along with people here.”
Listening carefully, Lorkin followed the woman out into the city.
W ith a nal push of magic, Lorkin swept the last of the dust,
hair, food scraps and unidenti able particles into a small pile,
then went to fetch a basket to dump it in.
A few weeks had passed since he’d taken up residence in the men’s
room. It was a large room, lled with rows of narrow beds. Most
were empty now, but from the possessions tucked under their
frames it was clear nearly all had regular occupants. Though he
knew most of the regulars’ names, there were a few who stayed for
three or four days then disappeared for a few more that he’d not yet
been introduced to.
“These beds are for men who don’t want to stay with their family
any more, and who haven’t paired with a woman,” Vytra had told
him. “There isn’t space for everyone to have their own room.”
“Are there women’s rooms?” Lorkin had asked.
“Sort of.” She had shrugged. “Sometimes friends and sisters share
rooms.”
At rst he’d been a novelty to the male Traitors, subjected to
plenty of questions about Kyralia, how he had come to Sanctuary,
and what he planned to do there. The latter he could not answer to
their satisfaction. He could hardly tell them about his interest in
Tyvara, and they sco ed at his plans to negotiate links between
their people and the Allied Lands.
“You’re a magician,” one had pointed out. “Surely you’ll be given
something to do that involves magic.”
Despite Savara’s assurance to the other Speakers that she’d nd
him work to do, he hadn’t been set any task or duty yet. So the men
had given him the job of keeping their room tidy. They’d been
surprised to discover he didn’t know how to, and were impressed
that he’d had servants to do such menial tasks for him in the Guild.
It didn’t get him assigned to any other task, however. They gave
him some rough instructions, then left him to work it out for
himself.
He’d asked plenty of questions in return, learning about the rules
and laws of Sanctuary, including those subtle ones about manners
and fairness that people set and stick to in order to reduce the
con icts that arise when living in close contact with each other.
As Chari had warned, Sanctuary was ruled by women. But while
men were blocked from the highest positions of power, they were
involved in all other activities in the city. The founders had decided
that Sanctuary would be foremost a place where women were in
charge, but beyond that it must be a place where people were equal.
Lorkin was impressed to nd that men had more freedom and
respect here than women did in Kyralia. He’d been worried that
Traitor society may be the opposite. It made him appreciate, in ways
he’d never considered before, how unfair Kyralian society actually
was to women. Though it was a lot better than some other societies
– like Lonmar’s. And the rest of Sachaka’s.
Still, there were some notable ways that women were favoured
over men here. Men were taught magic, but not black magic. Only
women knew how to prevent a pregnancy, and all children belonged
to them.
In the small storeroom o the main room – in which, he noted,
even there, gemstones were set into the ceiling to provide
illumination – Lorkin found what he was looking for. He grabbed a
tightly woven basket from a stack and checked it for holes.
“It’s going to happen soon, I say.”
The voice was male and came from the main room. Lorkin
hesitated.
“No,” another man answered. “It could take years yet before we’re
ready.”
“But they’ve doubled the battle training sessions. We have more
scouts out there than ever before.”
“And we’ve got hundreds of gems still only half grown. No war is
going to happen until they mature, and that’s going to take months,
if not a year.” The man sighed. “I’m hungry.”
War? Lorkin looked at the basket, knowing that if he hovered here
and one of the men came into the store to get something to eat
they’d know he’d been listening. He forced himself to walk out of
the room, then straighten and smile as he saw them. They looked at
him in surprise.
“Greetings,” he said, despite knowing they found the term of
welcome odd. “You’re back early. Can I get you anything?”
The two men glanced at each other, then the one who’d said he
was hungry started toward the store. “No, but thanks for o ering.”
Lorkin began sweeping the rubbish into the basket. It was not easy
getting the dust particles from the at oor into the circular woven
vessel, and he was concentrating so hard that he lost track of where
the other men were.
“Lorkin,” a sharp, female voice said close behind him.
He froze. Which was better than visibly jumping, he decided as he
recognised the voice. Straightening, he turned to smile politely at
the woman.
“Speaker Kalia,” he replied.
She looked him up and down. He was wearing the simple trousers
and tunic that the other men favoured – those that did not prefer
the shift that both men and women wore.
“Follow me,” she said.
She turned on her heel and strode toward the door. Putting the
basket down, he hurried after her. He glanced at the two men, who
both grimaced in sympathy.
Kalia walked quickly for someone with short legs and a plump
body. Lorkin found he took one step for every two of hers, yet she
did not appear to tire. He imagined that anyone seeing them both
would know instantly who was in charge. De nitely not me. Ah, how
low I’ve sunk since leaving home …
Her pace and expression didn’t invite conversation, but this
woman had wanted Tyvara executed. He was not going to let her
intimidate him. Or, at least, he wasn’t going to let her know he was
intimidated.
“Where are we going?” he ventured.
“Somewhere you can be put to work at more appropriate duties
than cleaning your room.” She glanced at him; her eyes were sharp
and calculating. “Here in Sanctuary we try to give people tasks to
suit their temperament and talents. I’m not sure if the task I have for
you will suit your temperament, but it de nitely will suit your
talents.”
Somehow she managed to quicken her pace even further, hinting
that no more conversation was welcome. When they reached a large
archway she stopped, her breathing a little laboured. She drew in a
deep breath and let it out, gesturing at the contents of the large
room beyond.
As in the men’s room, there were rows of beds. But instead of
being empty at this time of day, plenty of these were occupied, with
men, women and children. Familiar smells reached Lorkin’s nose,
along with some he did not recognise.
The smells of sickness and medicines.
His stomach sank, but not at the presence of so many sick people.
Instead, it was at the realisation that the Traitors had found the best
way to avenge themselves on him for his father’s betrayal. And to
test his own resolve to teach them Healing only if they gave
something equally important in return.
“This is the Care Room,” Kalia told him. “You’ll be working for me
from now on.”
GLOSSARY
ANIMALS
aga moths – pests that eat clothing
anyi – sea mammals with short spines
ceryni – small rodent
enka – horned domestic animal, bred for meat
eyoma – sea leeches
faren – general term for arachnids
gorin – large domestic animal used for food and to haul boats and
wagons
harrel – small domestic animal bred for meat
inava – insect believed to bestow good luck
limek – wild predatory dog
mullook – wild nocturnal bird
quannea – rare shells
rassook – domestic bird used formeat and feathers
ravi – rodent, larger than ceryni
reber – domestic animal, bred for wool and meat
sap y – woodland insect
sevli – poisonous lizard
squimp – squirrel-like creature that steals food
yeel – small domesticated breed of limek used for tracking
zill – small, intelligent mammal sometimes kept as a pet
PLANTS/FOOD
anivope vine – plant sensitive to mental projection
bellspice – spice grown in Sachaka
bol – (also means “river scum’) strong liquor made from tugors
brasi – green leafy vegetable with small buds
briskbark – bark with decongestant properties
cabbas – hollow, bell-shaped vegetable
chebol sauce – rich meat sauce made from bol
cone cakes – bite-sized cakes
cream ower – ower used as a sopori c
crots – large, purple beans
curem – smooth, nutty spice
curren – coarse grain with robust avour
dall – long fruit with tart orange, seedy esh
dunda – root chewed as a stimulating drug
gan-gan – owering bush from Lan
husroot – herb used for cleansing wounds
iker – stimulating drug, reputed to have aphrodisiac properties
jerras – long yellow beans
kreppa – foul-smelling medicinal herb
marin – red citrus fruit
monyo – bulb
myk – mind-a ecting drug
nalar – pungent root
nemmin – sleep-inducing drug
nightwood – hardwood timber
pachi – crisp, sweet fruit
papea – pepper-like spice
piorres – small, bell-shaped fruit
raka/suka – stimulating drink made from roasted beans, originally
from Sachaka
shem – edible reed-like plant
sumi – bitter drink
sweetdrops – candies
telk – seed from which an oil is extracted
tenn – grain that can be cooked as is, broken into small pieces, or
ground to make a our
tiro – edible nuts
tugor – parsnip-like root
ukkas – carnivorous plants
vare – berries from which most wine is produced
whitewater – pure spirits made from tugors
yellowseed – crop grown in Sachaka
TITLES/POSITIONS
Apprentice – Kyralian magician under training, and who has not
been taught higher magic yet
Ashaki – Sachakan landowner
Ichani – Sachakan free man or woman who has been declared
outcast
Lady – wife of a Kyralian landowner
Lord – Kyralian landowner, either of a ley or a city House, or their
heir
Magician – Kyralian higher magician (“Lord” used instead if magi-
cian is a landowner)
Master – free Sachakan
Village/Town Master – commoner in charge of a rural community
(answers to the ley’s lord)
OTHER TERMS
the approach – main corridor to the master’s room in Sachakan
houses
blood gem – arti cial gemstone that allows maker to hear the
thoughts of wearer
earthblood – term the Duna tribes use for lava
kyrima – a game played by magicians to teach and practise strategic
skills in battle
master’s room – main room in Sachakan houses for greeting guests
slavehouse – part of Sachakan homes where the slaves live andwork
slavespot – sexually transmitted disease
storestone – gemstone that can store magic
The writing of this book was blissfully free of the stresses and
distractions that made the previous one so di cult to complete, and
so these acknowledgements are short and sweet.
Thanks to Paul.
A big cheer to the Orbit team, especially Darren Nash and Joanna
Kramer, who have always been patient and delightful to work with
even during times of frustrating technical glitches. An extra nod of
appreciation to the local Orbit team and especially Adele, Amy,
Linda and Todd, who took me on signing tours of bookshops in their
respective Aussie cities and were such great company.
A special thanks to Marianne de Pierres for launching The
Magician’s Apprentice with style, and statistics even I was amazed to
hear.
Thanks, as always, to Fran and Liz, and all the agents around the
world, doing the hard part for me.
And the feedback readers: Donna, Nicole, Jenny, Mum and Dad.
Finally, as always, to the readers. May you never run out of good
books to read.